Fantasy 版 (精华区)
发信人: dying (颖脱而出), 信区: Fantasy
标 题: TEHANU
发信站: 哈工大紫丁香 (2003年06月17日20:10:01 星期二), 站内信件
URSULA K. Le GUIN
TEHANU
The Last Book of Earthsea
Only in silence the word,
only in dark the light,
only in dying life:
bright the hawk's flight on the empty sky.
-The Creation of Ea
A Bad Thing
After Farmer Flint of the Middle Valley died, his widow stayed on at the
farmhouse. Her son had gone to sea and her daughter had married a merchant of
Valmouth, so she lived alone at Oak Farm. People said she had been some kind
of great person in the foreign land she came from, and indeed the mage Ogion
used to stop by Oak Farm to see her; but that didn't count for much, since
Ogion visited all sorts of nobodies.
She had a foreign name, but Flint had called her Goha, which is what they
call a little white web-spinning spider on Gont. That name fit well enough,
she being white-skinned and small and a good spinner of goat's-wool and
sheep-fleece. So now she was Flint's widow, Goha, mistress of a flock of
sheep and the land to pasture them, four fields, an orchard of pears, two
tenants' cottages, the old stone farmhouse under the oaks, and the family
graveyard over the hill where Flint lay, earth in his earth.
"I've generally lived near tombstones," she said to her daughter.
"Oh, mother, come live in town with us!" said Apple, but the widow would
not leave her solitude.
"Maybe later, when there are babies and you'll need a hand," she said,
looking with pleasure at her grey-eyed daughter. "But not now. You don't need
me, And I like it here."
When Apple had gone back to her young husband, the widow closed the door
and stood on the stone-flagged floor of the kitchen of the farmhouse. It was
dusk, but she did not light the lamp, thinking of her own husband lighting
the lamp: the hands, the spark, the intent, dark face in the catching glow.
The house was silent.
"I used to live in a silent house, alone," she thought. "I will do so
again." She lighted the lamp.
In a late afternoon of the first hot weather, the widow's old friend Lark
came out from the village, hurrying along the dusty lane. "Goha," she said,
seeing her weeding in the bean patch, "Goha, it's a bad thing. It's a very
bad thing. Can you come?"
"Yes," the widow said. "What would the bad thing be?" Lark caught her
breath. She was a heavy, plain, middle-aged woman, whose name did not fit her
body any more. But once she had been a slight and pretty girl, and she had
befriended Goha, paying no attention to the villagers who gossiped about that
white-faced Kargish witch Flint had brought home; and friends they had been
ever since.
"A burned child," she said.
"Whose?"
"Tramps'."
Goha went to shut the farmhouse door, and they set off along the lane,
Lark talking as they went. She was short of breath and sweating. Tiny seeds
of the heavy grasses that lined the lane stuck to her cheeks and forehead,
and she brushed at them as she talked. "They've been camped in the river
meadows all the month. A man, passed himself off as a tinker, but he's a
thief, and a woman with him. And another man, younger, hanging around with
them most of the time. Not working, any of 'em. Filching and begging and
living off the woman. Boys from downriver were bring- ing them farmstuff to
get at her. You know how it is now, that kind of thing. And gangs on the
roads and coming by farms. If I were you, I'd lock my door, these days. So
this one, this younger fellow, comes into the village, and I was out in front
of our house, and he says, 'The child's not well.' I'd barely seen a child
with them, a little ferret of a thing, slipped out of sight so quick I wasn't
sure it was there at all. So I said, 'Not well? A fever?' And the fellow
says, 'She hurt herself, lighting the fire,' and then before I'd got myself
ready to go with him he'd made off. Gone. And when I went out there by the
river, the other pair was gone too. Cleared out. Nobody. All their traps and
trash gone too. There was just their campfire, still smoldering, and just by
it-partly in it-on the ground-"
Lark stopped talking for several steps. She looked straight ahead, not at
Goha.
"They hadn't even put a blanket over her," she said.
She strode on.
"She'd been pushed into the fire while it was burning," she said. She
swallowed, and brushed at the sticking seeds on her hot face. "I'd say maybe
she fell, but if she'd been awake she'd have tried to save herself. They beat
her and thought they'd killed her, I guess, and wanted to hide what they'd
done to her, so they-"
She stopped again, went on again.
"Maybe it wasn't him. Maybe he pulled her out. He came to get help for
her, after all. It must have been the father. I don't know. It doesn't
matter. Who's to know? Who's to care? Who's to care for the child? Why do we
do what we do?"
Goha asked in a low voice, "Will she live?"
"She might," Lark said. "She might well live."
After a while, as they neared the village, she said, "I don't know why I
had to come to you. Ivy's there. There's nothing to be done."
"I could go to Valmouth, for Beech."
"Nothing he could do. It's beyond. . . beyond help. I got her warm. Ivy's
given her a potion and a sleeping charm. I carried her home. She must be six
or seven but she didn't weigh what a two-year-old would. She never really
waked. But she makes a sort of gasping. . . . I know there isn't anything you
can do. But I wanted you."
"I want to come," Goha said. But before they entered Lark's house, she
shut her eyes and held her breath a moment in dread.
Lark's children had been sent outdoors, and the house was silent. The
child lay unconscious on Lark's bed. The village witch, Ivy, had smeared an
ointment of witch hazel and heal-all on the lesser burns, but had not touched
the right side of the face and head and the right hand, which had been
charred to the bone. She had drawn the rune Pirr above the bed, and left it
at that.
"Can you do anything?" Lark asked in a whisper.
Goha stood looking down at the burned child. Her hands were still. She
shook her head.
"You learned healing, up on the mountain, didn't you?" Pain and shame and
rage spoke through Lark, begging for relief.
"Even Ogion couldn't heal this," the widow said.
Lark turned away, biting her lip, and wept. Goha held her, stroking her
grey hair. They held each other.
The witch Ivy came in from the kitchen, scowling at the sight of Goha.
Though the widow cast no charms and worked no spells, it was said that when
she first came to Gont she had lived at Re Albi as a ward of the mage, and
that she knew the Archmage of Roke, and no doubt had foreign and uncanny
powers. Jealous of her prerogative, the witch went to the bed and busied
herself beside it, making a mound of something in a dish and setting it afire
so that it smoked and reeked while she muttered a curing charm over and over.
The rank herbal smoke made the burned child cough and half rouse, flinching
and shuddering. She began to make a gasping noise, quick, short, scraping
breaths. Her one eye seemed to look up at Goha.
Goha stepped forward and took the child's left hand in hers. She spoke in
her own language. "I served them and I left them," she said. "I will not let
them have you.
The child stared at her or at nothing, trying to breathe, and trying
again to breathe, and trying again to breathe.
Going to the Falcon 's Nest
It was more than a year later, in the hot and spacious days after the Long
Dance, that a messenger came down the road from the north to Middle Valley
asking for the widow Goha. People in the village put him on the path, and he
came to Oak Farm late in the afternoon. He was a sharp-faced, quick-eyed man.
He looked at Goha and at the sheep in the fold beyond her and said, "Fine
lambs. The Mage of Re Albi sends for you."
"He sent you?" Goha inquired, disbelieving and amused. Ogion, when he wanted
her, had quicker and finer messengers: an eagle calling, or only his own
voice saying her name quietly- Will you come?
The man nodded. "He's sick," he said. "Will you be selling off any of the ewe
lambs?"
"I might. You can talk to the shepherd if you like. Over by the fence there.
Do you want supper? You can stay the night here if you want, but I'll be on
my way.
"Tonight?"
This time there was no amusement in her look of mild scorn. "I won't be
waiting about," she said. She spoke for a minute with the old shepherd,
Clearbrook, and then turned away, going up to the house built into the
hillside by the oak grove. The messenger followed her.
In the stone-floored kitchen, a child whom he looked at once and quickly
looked away from served him milk, bread, cheese, and green onions, and then
went off, never saying a word. She reappeared beside the woman, both shod for
travel and carrying light leather packs. The messenger followed them out, and
the widow locked the farmhouse door. They all set off together, he on his
business, for the message from Ogion had been a mere favor added to the
serious matter of buying a breeding ram for the Lord of Re Albi; and the
woman and the burned child bade him farewell where the lane turned off to the
village. They went on up the road he had come down, northward and then west
into the foothills of Gont Mountain.
They walked until the long summer twilight began to darken. They left the
narrow road then and made camp in a dell down by a stream that ran quick and
quiet, reflecting the pale evening sky between thickets of scrub willow. Goha
made a bed of dry grass and willow leaves, hidden among the thickets like a
hare's form, and rolled the child up in a blanket on it. "Now," she said,
"you're a cocoon. In the morning you'll be a butterfly and hatch out." She
lighted no fire, but lay in her cloak beside the child and watched the stars
shine one by one and listened to what the stream said quietly, until she
slept.
When they woke in the cold before the dawn, she made a small fire and heated
a pan of water to make oatmeal gruel for the child and herself. The little
ruined butterfly came shivering from her cocoon, and Goha cooled the pan in
the dewy grass so that the child could hold it and drink from it. The east
was brightening above the high, dark shoulder of the mountain when they set
off again.
They walked all day at the pace of a child who tired easily. The woman's
heart yearned to make haste, but she walked slowly. She was not able to carry
the child any long distance, and so to make the way easier for her she told
her stories.
"We're going to see a man, an old man, called Ogion," she told her as they
trudged along the narrow road that wound upward through the forests. "He's a
wise man, and a wizard. Do you know what a wizard is, Therru?"
If the child had had a name, she did not know it or would not say it. Goha
called her Therru.
She shook her head.
"Well, neither do I," said the woman. "But I know what they can do. When I
was young-older than you, but young--Ogion was my father, the way I'm your
mother now. He looked after me and tried to teach me what I needed to know.
He stayed with me when he'd rather have been wandering by himself. He liked
to walk, all along these roads like we're doing now, and in the forests, in
the wild places. He went everywhere on the mountain, looking at things,
listening. He always listened, so they called him the Silent. But he used to
talk to me. He told me stories. Not only the great stories everybody learns,
the heroes and the kings and the things that happened long ago and far away,
but stories only he knew." She walked on a way before she went on. "I'll tell
you one of those stories now.
"One of the things wizards can do is turn into something else-take another
form. Shape-changing, they call it. An ordinary sorcerer can make himself
look like somebody else, or like an animal, just so you don't know for a
minute what you're seeing-as if he'd put on a mask. But the wizards and mages
can do more than that. They can be the mask, they can truly change into
another being. So a wizard, if he wanted to cross the sea and had no boat,
might turn himself into a gull and fly across. But he has to be careful. If
he stays a bird, he begins to think what a bird thinks and
forget what a man thinks, and he might fly off and be a gull and never a man
again. So they say there was a great wizard once who liked to turn himself
into a bear, and did it too often, and became a bear, and killed his own
little son; and they had to hunt him down and kill him. But Ogion used to
joke about it, too. Once when the mice got into his pantry and ruined the
cheese, he caught one with a tiny mousetrap spell, and he held the mouse up
like this and looked it in the eye and said, 'I told you not to play mouse!'
And for a minute I thought he meant it. . .
"Well, this story is about something like shape-changing, but -Ogion said it
was beyond all shape-changing he knew, because it was about being two things,
two beings, at once, and in the same form, and he said that this is beyond
the power of wizards. But he met with it in a little village around on the
northwest coast of Gont, a place called Kemay, There was a woman there, an
old fisherwoman, not a witch, not learned; but she made songs. That's how
-Ogion came to hear of her. He was wandering there, the way he did, going
along the coast, listening; and he heard somebody singing, mending a net or
caulking a boat and singing as they worked:
Farther west than west beyond the land
my people are dancing on the other wind.
"It was the tune and the words both that -Ogion heard, and he had never heard
them before, so he asked where the song came from. And from one answer to
another, he went along to where somebody said, '-Oh, that's one of the songs
of the Woman of Kemay.' So he went on along to Kemay, the little fishing port
where the woman lived, and he found her house down by the harbor. And he
knocked on the door with his mage's staff. And she came and opened the door.
"Now you know, you remember when we talked about names, how children have
child-names, and everybody has a use-name, and maybe a nickname too.
Different people may call you differently. You're my Therru, but maybe you'll
have a Hardic use-name when you get older. But also, when you come into your
womanhood, you will, if all be rightly done, be given your true name. It will
be given you by one of true power, a wizard or a mage, because that is their
power, their art-naming. And that's the name you'll maybe never tell another
person, because your own self is in your true name. It is your strength, your
power; but to another it is risk and burden, only to be given in utmost need
and trust. But a great mage, knowing all names, may know it without your
telling him.
"So Ogion, who is a great mage, stood at the door of the little house there
by the seawall, and the old woman opened the door. Then Ogion stepped back,
and he held up his oak staff, and put up his hand, too, like this, as if
trying to protect himself from the heat of afire, and in his amazement and
fear he said her true name aloud-' Dragon!'
"In that first moment, he told me, it was no woman he saw at all in the
doorway, but a blaze and glory of fire, and a glitter of gold scales and
talons, and the great eyes of a dragon. They say you must not look into a
dragon's eyes.
"Then that was gone, and he saw no dragon, but an old woman standing there in
the doorway, a bit stooped, a tall old fisherwoman with big hands. She looked
at him as he did at her. And she said, 'Come in, Lord Ogion.'
"So he went in. She served him fish soup, and they ate, and then they talked
by her fire. He thought that she must
be a shape-changer, but he didn't know, you see, whether she was a woman who
could change herself into a dragon, or a dragon who could change itself into
a woman. So he asked her at last, 'Are you woman or dragon?' And she didn't
say, but she said, 'I'll sing you a story I know.' "
Therru had a little stone in her shoe. They stopped to get that out, and went
on, very slowly, for the road was climbing steeply between cut banks of stone
overhung by thickets where the cicadas sang in the summer heat.
"So this is the story she sang to him, to Ogion.
"When Segoy raised the islands of the world from the sea in the beginning of
time, the dragons were the first born of the land and the wind blowing over
the land. So the Song of the Creation tells. But her song told also that
then, in the beginning, dragon and human were all one. They were all one
people, one race, winged, and speaking the True Language.
"They were beautiful, and strong, and wise, and free.
"But in time nothing can be without becoming. So among the dragon-people some
became more and more in love with flight and wildness, and would have less
and less to do with the works of making, or with study and learning, or with
houses and cities. They wanted only to fly farther and farther, hunting and
eating their kill, ignorant and uncaring, seeking more freedom and more.
"Others of the dragon-people came to care little for flight, but gathered up
treasure, wealth, things made, things learned. They built houses, strongholds
to keep their treasures in, so they could pass all they gained to their
children, ever seeking more increase and more. And they came to fear the wild
ones, who might come flying and destroy all their dear hoard, burn it up in a
blast of flame out of mere carelessness and ferocity.
"The wild ones feared nothing. They learned nothing. Because they were
ignorant and fearless, they could not save themselves when the flightless
ones trapped them as animals and killed them. But other wild ones would come
flying and set the beautiful houses afire, and destroy, and kill. Those that
were strongest, wild or wise, were those who killed each other first.
"Those who were most afraid, they hid from the fighting, and when there was
no more hiding they ran from it. They used their skills of making and made
boats and sailed east, away from the western isles where the great winged
ones made war among the ruined towers.
"So those who had been both dragon and human changed, becoming two
peoples-the dragons, always fewer and wilder, scattered by their endless,
mindless greed and anger, in the far islands of the Western Reach; and the
human folk, always more numerous in their rich towns and cities, filling up
the Inner Isles and all the south and east. But among them there were some
who saved the learning of the dragons-the True Language of the Making-and
these are now the wizards.
"But also, the song.said, there are those among us who know they once were
dragons, and among the dragons there are some who know their kinship with us.
And these say that when the one people were becoming two, some of them, still
both human and dragon, still winged, went not east but west, on over the Open
Sea, till they came to the other side of the world. There they live in peace,
great winged beings both wild and wise, with human mind and dragon heart. And
so she sang,
Farther west than west beyond the land
my people are dancing on the other wind.
"So that was the story told in the song of the Woman of Kemay, and it ended
with those words.
"Then -Ogion said to her, 'When I first saw you I saw your true being. This
woman who sits across the hearth from me is no more than the dress she wears.'
"But she shook her head and laughed, and all she would say was, 'If only it
were that simple!'
"So then after a while Ogion came back to Re Albi. And when he told me the
story, he said to me, 'Ever since that day, I have wondered if anyone, man or
dragon, has been farther west than west; and who we are, and where our
wholeness lies.' . . . Are you getting hungry, Therru? There's a good sitting
place, it looks like, up there where the road turns. Maybe from there we'll
be able to see Gont Port, away down at the foot of the mountain. It's a big
city, even bigger than Valmouth. We'll sit down when we get to the turn, and
rest a bit."
From the high corner of the road they could indeed look down the vast slopes
of forest and rocky meadow to the town on its bay, and see the crags that
guarded the entrance to the bay, and the boats on the dark water like
wood-chips or water beetles. Far ahead on their road and still somewhat above
it, a cliff jutted out from the mountainside: the Over-fell, on which was the
village of Re Albi, the Falcon's Nest.
Therru made no complaints, but when presently Goha said, "Well, shall we go
on?" the child, sitting there between the road and the gulfs of sky and sea,
shook her head. The sun was warm, and they had walked a long way since their
breakfast in the dell.
Goha brought out their water bottle, and they drank again; then she brought
out a bag of raisins and walnuts and gave it to the child.
"We're in sight of where we're going," she said, "and I'd like to be there
before dark, if we can. I'm anxious to see Ogion. You'll be very tired, but
we won't walk fast. And we'll be there safe and warm tonight. Keep the bag,
tuck it in your belt. Raisins make your legs strong. Would you like a
staff-like a wizard-to help you walk?"
Therru munched and nodded. Goha took out her knife and cut a strong shoot of
hazel for the child, and then seeing an alder fallen above the road, broke
off a branch of it and trimmed it to make herself a stout, light stick.
They set off again, and the child trudged along, beguiled by raisins. Goha
sang to amuse them both, love songs and shepherd's songs and ballads she had
learned in the Middle Valley; but all at once her voice hushed in the middle
of a tune. She stopped, putting out her hand in a warning gesture.
The four men ahead of them on the road had seen her. There was no use trying
to hide in the woods till they went on or went by.
"Travelers," she said quietly to Therru, and walked on. She took a good grip
on her alder stick.
What Lark had said about gangs and thieves was not just the complaint each
generation makes that things aren't what they used to be and the world's
going to the dogs. In the last several years there had been a loss of peace
and trust in the towns and countrysides of Gont. Young men behaved like
strangers among their own people, abusing hospitality, stealing, selling what
they stole. Beggary was common where it had been rare, and the unsatisfied
beggar threatened violence. Women did not like to go alone in the streets and
roads, nor did they like that loss of freedom. Some of the young women ran
off to join the gangs of thieves and poachers. Often they came home within
the year, sullen, bruised, and pregnant. And among village sorcerers and
witches there was rumor of matters of their
profession going amiss: charms that had always cured did not cure; spells of
finding found nothing, or the wrong thing; love potions drove men into
frenzies not of desire but of murderous jealousy. And worse than this, they
said, people who knew nothing of the art of magic, the laws and limits of it
and the dangers of breaking them, were calling themselves people of power,
promising wonders of wealth and health to their followers, promising even
immortality.
Ivy, the witch of Goha's village, had spoken darkly of this weakening of
magic, and so had Beech, the sorcerer of Valmouth. He was a shrewd and modest
man, who had come to help Ivy do what little could be done to lessen the pain
and scarring of Therru's burns. He had said to Goha, "I think a time in which
such things as this occur must be a time of ruining, the end of an age. How
many hundred years since there was a king in Havnor? It can't go on so. We
must turn to the center again or be lost, island against island, man against
man, father against child He had glanced at her, somewhat timidly, yet
with his clear, shrewd look. "The Ring of Erreth-Akbe is restored to the
Tower in Havnor," he said. "I know who brought it there That was the sign,
surely, that was the sign of the new age to come! But we haven't acted on it.
We have no king. We have no center. We must find our heart, our strength.
Maybe the Archmage will act at last." And he added, with confidence "After
all, he is from Gont."
But no word of any deed of the Archmage, or any heir to the Throne in Havnor,
had come; and things went badly on.
So it was with fear and a grim anger that Goha saw the four men on the road
before her step two to each side, so that she and the child would have to
pass between them.
As they went walking steadily forward, Therru kept very close beside her,
holding her head bent down, but she did not take her hand.
One of the men, a big-chested fellow with coarse black hairs on his upper lip
drooping over his mouth, began to speak, grinning a little. "Hey, there," he
said, but Goha spoke at the same time and louder. "Out of my way!" she said,
raising her alder stick as if it were a wizard's staff-" I have business with
Ogion!" She strode between the men and straight on, Therru trotting beside
her. The men, mistaking effrontery for witchery, stood still. Ogion's name
perhaps still held power. Or perhaps there was a power in Goha, or in the
child. For when the two had gone by, one of the men said, "Did you see that?"
and spat and made the sign to avert evil.
"Witch and her monster brat," another said. "Let em go!"
Another, a man in a leather cap and jerkin, stood staring for a moment while
the others slouched on their way. His face looked sick and stricken, yet he
seemed to be turning to follow the woman and child, when the hairy-lipped man
called to him, "Come on, Handy!" and he obeyed.
Out of sight around the turn of the road, Goha had picked up Therm and
hurried on with her until she had to set her down and stand gasping. The
child asked no questions and made no delays. As soon as Goha could go on
again, the child walked as fast as she could beside her, holding her hand.
"You're red," she said. "Like fire."
She spoke seldom, and not clearly, her voice being very hoarse; but Goha
could understand her.
"I'm angry," Goha said with a kind of laugh. "When I'm angry I turn red. Like
you people, you red people, you barbarians of the western lands. . . . Look,
there's a town
there ahead, that'll be Oak Springs. It's the only village on this road.
We'll stop there and rest a little. Maybe we can get some milk. And then, if
we can go on, if you think you can walk on up to the Falcon's Nest, we'll be
there by nightfall, I hope."
The child nodded. She opened her bag of raisins and walnuts and ate a few.
They trudged on.
The sun had long set when they came through the village and to Ogion's house
on the cliff-top. The first stars glimmered above a dark mass of clouds in
the west over the high horizon of the sea. The sea wind blew, bowing short
grasses. A goat bleated in the pastures behind the low, small house. The one
window shone dim yellow.
Goha stood her stick and Therm's against the wall by the door, and held the
child's hand, and knocked once.
There was no answer.
She pushed the door open. The fire on the hearth was out, cinders and grey
ashes, but an oil lamp on the table made a tiny seed of light, and from his
mattress on the floor in the far corner of the room Ogion said, "Come in,
Tenar."
Ogion
She bedded down the child on the cot in the western alcove. She built up the
fire. She went and sat down beside Ogion's pallet, cross-legged on the floor.
"No one looking after you!"
"I sent 'em off," he whispered.
His face was as dark and hard as ever, but his hair was thin and white, and
the dim lamp made no spark of light in his eyes.
"You could have died alone," she said, fierce. "Help me do that," the old man
said. "Not yet," she pleaded, stooping, laying her forehead on his hand.
"Not tonight," he agreed. "Tomorrow."
He lifted his hand to stroke her hair once, having that much strength.
She sat up again. The fire had caught. Its light played on the walls and low
ceiling and sent shadows to thicken in the corners of the long room.
"If Ged would come," the old man murmured.
"Have you sent to him?"
"Lost," Ogion said. "He's lost. A cloud. A mist over the lands. He went into
the west. Carrying the branch of the rowan tree. Into the dark mist. I've
lost my hawk."
"No, no, no," she whispered. "He'll come back."
They were silent. The fire's warmth began to penetrate them both, letting
Ogion relax and drift in and out of sleep, letting Tenar find rest pleasant
after the long day afoot. She rubbed her feet and her aching shoulders. She
had carried Therru part of the last long climb, for the child had begun to
gasp with weariness as she tried to keep up.
Tenar got up, heated water, and washed the dust of the road from her. She
heated milk, and ate bread she found in Ogion's larder, and came back to sit
by him. While he slept, she sat thinking, watching his face and the firelight
and the shadows.
She thought how a girl had sat silent, thinking, in the night, a long time
ago and far away, a girl in a windowless room, brought up to know herself
only as the one who had been eaten, priestess and servant of the powers of
the darkness of the earth. And there had been a woman who would sit up in the
peaceful silence of a farmhouse when husband and children slept, to think, to
be alone an hour. And there was the widow who had carried a burned child
here, who sat by the side of the dying, who waited for a man to return. Like
all women, any woman, doing what women do. But it was not by the names of the
servant or the wife or the widow that Ogion had called her. Nor had Ged, in
the darkness of the Tombs. Nor-longer ago, farther away than all-had her
mother, the mother she remembered only as the warmth and lion-color of
firelight, the mother who had given her her name.
"I am Tenar," she whispered. The fire, catching a dry branch of pine, leaped
up in a .bright yellow tongue of flame.
Ogion's breathing became troubled and he struggled for air. She helped him as
she could till he found some ease.
They both slept for a while, she drowsing by his dazed and drifting
silence, broken by strange words. Once in the deep night he said aloud, as if
meeting a friend in the road, "Are you here, then? Have you seen him?" And
again, when Tenar roused herself to build up the fire, he began to speak, but
this time it seemed he spoke to someone in his memory of years long gone, for
he said clearly as a child might, "I tried to help her, but the roof of the
house fell down. It fell on them. It was the earthquake." Tenar listened. She
too had seen earthquake. "I tried to help!" said the boy in the old man's
voice, in pain. Then the gasping struggle to breathe began again.
At first light Tenar was wakened by a sound she thought at first was the sea.
It was a great rushing of wings. A flock of birds was flying over, low, so
many that their wings stormed and the window was darkened by their quick
shadows. It seemed they circled the house once and then were gone. They made
no call or cry, and she did not know what birds they were.
People came that morning from the village of Re Albi, which Ogion's house
stood apart from to the north. A goatgirl came, and a woman for the milk of
Ogion's goats, and others to ask what they might do for him. Moss, the
village witch, fingered the alder stick and the hazel switch by the door and
peered in hopefully, but not even she ventured to come in, and Ogion growled
from his pallet, "Send 'em away! Send 'em all away!"
He seemed stronger and more comfortable. When little Therru woke, he spoke to
her in the dry, kind, quiet way Tenar remembered. The child went out to play
in the sun, and he said to Tenar, "What is the name you call her?"
He knew the True Language of the Making, but he had never learned any Kargish
at all.
"Therru means burning, the flaming of fire," she said.
"Ah, ah," he said, and his eyes gleamed, and he frowned. He seemed to grope
for words for a moment. "That one," he said, "That one-they will fear her."
"They fear her now," Tenar said bitterly. The mage shook his head.
"Teach her, Tenar," he whispered. "Teach her all!-Not Roke. They are afraid-
Why did I let you go? Why did you go? To bring her here-too late?"
"Be still, be still," she told him tenderly, for he struggled with words and
breath and could find neither. He shook his head, and gasped, "Teach her!"
and lay still.
He would not eat, and only drank a little water. In the middle of the day he
slept. Waking in the late afternoon, he said, "Now, daughter," and sat up.
Tenar took his hand, smiling at him.
"Help me get up.
"No, no.
"Yes," he said. "Outside. I can't die indoors."
"Where would you go?"
"Anywhere. But if I could, the forest path," he said. "The beech above the
meadow."
When she saw he was able to get up and determined to get outdoors, she helped
him. Together they got to the door, where he stopped and looked around the
one room of his house. In the dark corner to the right of the doorway his
tall staff leaned against the wall, shining a little. Tenar reached out to
give it to him, but he shook his head. "No," he said, "not that." He looked
around again as if for something missing, forgotten. "Come on," he said at
last.
When the bright wind from the west blew on his face and he looked out at the
high horizon, he said, "That's good."
"Let me get some people from the village to make a litter and carry you," she
said. "They're all waiting to do something for you."
"I want to walk," the old man said.
Therru came around the house and watched solemnly as Ogion and Tenar went,
step by step, and stopping every five or six steps for Ogion to gasp, across
the tangled meadow towards the woods that climbed steep up the mountainside
from the inner side of the cliff-top. The sun was hot and the wind cold. It
took them a very long time to cross that meadow. Ogion's face was grey and
his legs shook like the grass in the wind when they got at last to the foot
of a big young beech tree just inside the forest, a few yards up the
beginning of the mountain path. There he sank down between the roots of the
tree, his back against its trunk. For a long time he could not move or speak,
and his heart, pounding and faltering, shook his body. He nodded finally and
whispered, "All right."
Therru had followed them at a distance. Tenar went to her and held her and
talked to her a little. She came back to Ogion. "She's bringing a rug," she
said.
"Not cold."
"I'm cold."
There was the flicker of a smile on her face.
The child came lugging a goat's-wool blanket. She whispered to Tenar and ran
off again.
"Heather will let her help milk the goats, and look after her," Tenar said to
Ogion. "So I can stay here with you.
"Never one thing, for you," he said in the hoarse whistling whisper that was
all the voice he had left.
"No. Always at least two things, and usually more," she said. "But I am here."
He nodded.
For a long time he did not speak, but sat back against the
tree trunk, his eyes closed. Watching his face, Tenar saw it change as slowly
as the light changed in the west.
He opened his eyes and gazed through a gap in the thickets at the western
sky. He seemed to watch something, some act or deed, in that far, clear,
golden space of light. He whispered once, hesitant, as if unsure, "The
dragon-"
The sun was down, the wind fallen.
Ogion looked at Tenar.
"Over," he whispered with exultation. "All changed!- Changed, Tenar!
Wait-wait here, for-" A shaking took his body, tossing him like the branch of
a tree in a great wind. He gasped. His eyes closed and opened, gazing beyond
her. He laid his hand on hers; she bent down to him; he spoke his name to
her, so that after his death he might be truly known.
He gripped her hand and shut his eyes and began once more the struggle to
breathe, until there was no more breath. He lay then like one of the roots of
the tree, while the stars came out and shone through the leaves and branches
of the forest.
Tenar sat with the dead man in the dusk and dark. A lantern gleamed like a
firefly across the meadow. She had laid the woollen blanket across them both,
but her hand that held his hand had grown cold, as if it held a stone. She
touched her forehead to his hand once more. She stood up, stiff and dizzy,
her body feeling strange to her, and went to meet and guide whoever was
coming with the light.
That night his neighbors sat with Ogion, and he did not send them away.
The mansion house of the Lord of Re Albi stood on an outcrop of rocks on
the mountainside above the Overfell. Early in the morning, long before the
sun had cleared the mountain, the wizard in the service of that lord came
down through the village; and very soon after, another wizard came toiling up
the steep road from Gont Port, having set out in darkness. Word had come to
them that Ogion was dying, or their power was such that they knew of the
passing of a great mage.
The village of Re Albi had no sorcerer, only its mage, and a witchwoman to
perform the lowly jobs of finding and mending and bonesetting, which people
would not bother the mage with. Aunty Moss was a dour creature, unmarried,
like most witches, and unwashed, with greying hair tied in curious
charm-knots, and eyes red-rimmed from herb-smoke, It was she who had come
across the meadow with the lantern, and with Tenar and the others she had
watched the night by Ogion's body. She had set a wax candle in a glass shade,
there in the forest, and had burned sweet oils in a dish of clay; she had
said the words that should be said, and done what should be done. When it
came to touching the body to prepare it for burial, she had looked once at
Tenar as if for permission, and then had gone on with her offices. Village
witches usually saw to the homing, as they called it, of the dead, and often
to the burial.
When the wizard came down from the mansion house, a tall young man with a
silvery staff of pinewood, and the other one came up from Gont Port, a stout
middle-aged man with a short yew staff, Aunty Moss did not look at them with
her bloodshot eyes, but ducked and bowed and drew back, gathering up her poor
charms and witcheries.
When she had laid out the corpse as it should lie to be buried, on the left
side with the knees bent, she had put in the upturned left hand a tiny
charm-bundle, something wrapped in soft goatskin and tied with colored cord.
The wizard of Re Albi flicked it away with the tip of his staff.
"Is the grave dug?" asked the wizard of Gont Port.
"Yes," said the wizard of Re Albi. "It is dug in the graveyard of my lord's
house," and he pointed towards the mansion house up on the mountain.
"I see," said Gont Port. "I had thought our mage would be buried in all honor
in the city he saved from earthquake."
"My lord desires the honor," said Re Albi. "But it would seem-" Gont Port
began, and stopped, not liking to argue, but not ready to give in to the
young man's easy claim. He looked down at the dead man. "He must be buried
nameless," he said with regret and bitterness. 'I walked all night, but came
too late. A great loss made greater!"
The young wizard said nothing.
"His name was Aihal," Tenar said. "His wish was to lie here, where he lies
now."
Both men looked at her. The young man, seeing a middle-aged village woman,
simply turned away. The man from Gont Port stared a moment and said, "Who are
you?"
"I'm called Flint's widow, Goha," she said. "Who I am is your business to
know, I think. But not mine to say.
At this, the wizard of Re Albi found her worthy of a brief stare. "Take care,
woman, how you speak to men of power!"
"Wait, wait," said Gont Port, with a patting gesture, trying to calm Re
Albi's indignation, and still gazing at Tenar. "You were-You were his ward,
once?"
"And friend," Tenar said. Then she turned away her head and stood silent.
She had heard the anger in her voice as she said that word, "friend." She
looked down at her friend, a corpse ready for the ground, lost and still.
They stood over him, alive and full of power, offering no friendship, only
contempt, rivalry, anger.
"I'm sorry," she said. "It was a long night. I was with him when he died."
"It is not-" the young wizard began, but unexpectedly old Aunty Moss
interrupted him, saying loudly, "She was. Yes, she was. Nobody else but her.
He sent for her. He sent young Townsend the sheep-dealer to tell her come,
clear down round the mountain, and he waited his dying till she did come and
was with him, and then he died, and he died where he would be buried, here."
"And" said the older man, "-and he told you-?"
"His name." Tenar looked at them, and do what she would, the incredulity on
the older man's face, the contempt on the other's, brought out an answering
disrespect in her. "I said that name," she said. "Must I repeat it to you?"
To her consternation she saw from their expressions that in fact they had not
heard the name, Ogion's true name; they had not paid attention to her.
"Oh!" she said. "This is a bad time-a time when even such a name can go
unheard, can fall like a stone! Is listening not power? Listen, then: his
name was Aihal. His name in death is Aihal, In the songs he will be known as
Aihal of Gont. If there are songs to be made any more. He was a silent man.
Now he's very silent. Maybe there will be no songs, only silence. I don't
know. I'm very tired. I've lost my father and dear friend." Her voice failed;
her throat closed on a sob. She turned to go. She saw on the forest path the
little charm-bundle Aunty Moss had made. She picked it up, knelt down by the
corpse, kissed the open palm of the left hand, and laid the bundle on it.
There on her knees she looked up once more at the two men. She spoke quietly.
"Will you see to it," she said, "that his grave is dug here, where he desired
it?"
First the older man, then the younger, nodded. She got up, smoothing down her
skirt, and started back across the meadow in the morning light.
Kalessin
"Wait," Ogion, who was Aihal now, had said to her, just before the wind of
death had shaken him and torn him loose from living. "Over-all changed," he
had whispered, and then, "Tenar, wait-" But he had not said what she should
wait for. The change he had seen or known, perhaps; but what change? Was it
his own death he meant, his own life that was over? He had spoken with joy,
exulting. He had charged her to wait.
"What else have I to do?" she said to herself, sweeping the floor of his
house. "What else have I ever done?" And, speaking to her memory of him,
"Shall I wait here, in your house?"
"Yes," said Aihal the Silent, silently, smiling.
So she swept out the house and cleaned the hearth and aired the mattresses.
She threw out some chipped crockery and a leaky pan, but she handled them
gently. She even put her cheek against a cracked plate as she took it out to
the midden, for it was evidence of the old mage's illness this past year.
Austere he had been, living as plain as a poor farmer, but when his eyes were
clear and his strength in him, he would never have used a broken plate or let
a pan go unmended. These signs of his weakness grieved her, making her wish
she had been with him to look after him.
"I would have liked that," she said to her memory of him, but he said
nothing. He never would have anybody to look after him but himself. Would he
have said to her, "You have better things to do?" She did not know. He was
silent. But that she did right to stay here in his house, now, she was
certain.
Shandy and her old husband, Clearbrook, who had been at the farm in Middle
Valley longer than she herself had, would look after the flocks and the
orchard; the other couple on the farm, Tiff and Sis, would get the field
crops in. The rest would have to take care of itself for a while. Her
raspberry canes would be picked by the neighborhood children. That was too
bad; she loved raspberries. Up here on the Overfell, with the sea wind always
blowing, it was too cold to grow raspberries. But Ogion's little old peach
tree in the sheltered nook of the house wall facing south bore eighteen
peaches, and Therru watched them like a mousing cat till the day she came in
and said in her hoarse, unclear voice, "Two of the peaches are all red and
yellow."
"Ah," said Tenar. They went together to the peach tree and picked the two
first ripe peaches and ate them there, unpeeled. The juice ran down their
chins. They licked their fingers.
"Can I plant it?" said Therru, looking at the wrinkled stone of her peach.
"Yes. This is a good place, near the old tree. But not too close. So they
both have room for their roots and branches."
The child chose a place and dug the tiny grave. She laid the stone in it and
covered it over. Tenar watched her. In the few days they had been living
here, Therru had changed, she thought. She was still unresponsive, without
anger, without joy; but since they had been here her awful vigilance, her
immobility, had almost imperceptibly relaxed. She had desired the peaches.
She had thought of planting the stone, of increasing the number of peaches in
the world. At Oak Farm she was unafraid of two people only, Tenar and Lark;
but here she had taken quite easily to Heather, the goatherd of Re Albi, a
bawling-voiced, gentle lackwit of twenty, who treated the child very much as
another goat, a lame kid. That was all right. And Aunty Moss was all right
too, no matter what she smelled like.
When Tenar had first lived in Re Albi, twenty-five years ago, Moss had not
been an old witch but a young one. She had ducked and bowed and grinned at
"the young lady," "the White Lady," Ogion's ward and student, never speaking
to her but with the utmost respect. Tenar had felt that respect to be false,
a mask for an envy and dislike and distrust that were all too familiar to her
from women over whom she had been placed in a position of superiority, women
who saw themselves as common and her as uncommon, as privileged. Priestess of
the Tombs of Atuan or foreign ward of the Mage of Gont, she was set apart,
set above. Men had given her power, men had shared their power with her.
Women looked at her from outside, sometimes rivalrous, often with a trace of
ridicule.
She had felt herself the one left outside, shut out. She had fled from the
Powers of the desert tombs, and then she had left the powers of learning and
skill offered her by her guardian, Ogion. She had turned her back on all
that, gone to the other side, the other room, where the women lived, to be
one of them. A wife, a farmer's wife, a mother, a householder, undertaking
the power that a woman was born to, the authority allotted her by the
arrangements of mankind.
And there in the Middle Valley, Flint's wife, Goha, had
been welcome, all in all, among the women; a foreigner to be sure,
white-skinned and talking a bit strange, but a notable housekeeper, an
excellent spinner, with well-behaved, well-grown children and a prospering
farm: respectable. And among men she was Flint's woman, doing what a woman
should do: bed, breed, bake, cook, clean, spin, sew, serve. A good woman.
They approved of her. Flint did well for himself after all, they said. I
wonder what a white woman's like, white all over? their eyes said, looking at
her, until she got older and they no longer saw her.
Here, now, it was all changed, there was none of all that. Since she and Moss
had kept the vigil for Ogion together, the witch had made it plain that she
would be her friend, follower, servant, whatever Tenar wanted her to be.
Tenar was not at all sure what she wanted Aunty Moss to be, finding her
unpredictable, unreliable, incomprehensible, passionate, ignorant, sly, and
dirty. But Moss got on with the burned child. Perhaps it was Moss who was
working this change, this slight easing, in Therru. With her, Therru behaved
as with everyone-blank, unanswering, docile in the way an inanimate thing, a
stone, is docile. But the old woman had kept at her, offering her little
sweets and treasures, bribing, coaxing, wheedling. "Come with Aunty Moss now,
dearie! Come along and Aunty Moss'll show you the prettiest sight you ever
saw. . .
Moss's nose leaned out over her toothless jaws and thin lips; there was a
wart on her cheek the size of a cherry pit; her hair was a grey-black tangle
of charm-knots and wisps; and she had a smell as strong and broad and deep
and complicated as the smell of a fox's den. "Come into the forest with me,
dearie!" said the old witches in the tales told to the children of Gont.
"Come with me and I'll show you such a pretty sight!" And then the witch shut
the child in her oven and baked it brown and ate it, or dropped it into her
well, where it hopped and croaked dismally forever, or put it to sleep for a
hundred years inside a great stone, till the King's Son should come, the Mage
Prince, to shatter the stone with a word, wake the maiden with a kiss, and
slay the wicked witch. . . .
"Come with me, dearie!" And she took the child into the fields and showed her
a lark's nest in the green hay, or into the marshes to gather white hallows,
wild mint, and blueberries. She did not have to shut the child in an oven, or
change hen into a monster, on seal her in stone. That had all been done
already.
She was kind to Therru, but it was a wheedling kindness, and when they were
together it seemed that she talked to the child a great deal. Tenar did not
know what Moss was telling or teaching hen, whether she should let the witch
fill the child's head with stuff. Weak as woman 's magic, wicked as woman's
magic, she had heard said a hundred times. And indeed she had seen that the
witcheny of such women as Moss or Ivy was often weak in sense and sometimes
wicked in intent or through ignorance. Village witches, though they might
know many spells and charms and some of the great songs, were never trained
in the High Arts on the principles of magery. No woman was so trained.
Wizardry was a man's work, a man's skill; magic was made by men. There had
never been a woman mage. Though some few had called themselves wizard or
sorceress, their power had been untrained, strength without art or knowledge,
half frivolous, half dangerous.
The ordinary village witch, like Moss, lived on a few words of the True
Speech handed down as great treasures from older witches on bought at high
cost from sorcerers, and a supply of common spells of finding and mending,
much meaningless ritual and mystery-making and jibberish, a solid
experiential training in midwifery, bonesetting, and curing animal and human
ailments, a good knowledge of herbs mixed with a mess of superstitions-all
this built up on whatever native gift she might have of healing, chanting,
changing, or spellcasting. Such a mixture might be a good one or a bad one.
Some witches were fierce, bitter women, ready to do harm and knowing no
reason not to do harm. Most were midwives and healers with a few love
potions, fertility charms, and potency spells on the side, and a good deal of
quiet cynicism about them. A few, having wisdom though no learning, used
their gift purely for good, though they could not tell, as any prentice
wizard could, the reason for what they did, and prate of the Balance and the
Way of Power to justify their action or abstention. "I follow my heart," one
of these women had said to Tenar when she was Ogion's ward and pupil. "Lord
Ogion is a great mage. He does you great honor, teaching you. But look and
see, child, if all he's taught you isn't finally to follow your heart."
Tenar had thought even then that the wise woman was right, and yet not
altogether night; there was something left out of that. And she still thought
so.
Watching Moss with Therru now, she thought Moss was following her heart, but
it was a dark, wild, queer heart, like a crow, going its own ways on its own
errands. And she thought that Moss might be drawn to Therru not only by
kindness but by Therru's hurt, by the harm that had been done her: by
violence, by fire.
Nothing Therru did or said, however, showed that she was learning
anything from Aunty Moss except where the lark nested and the blueberries
grew and how to make cat's cradles one-handed. Thernu's right hand had been
so eaten by fire that it had healed into a kind of club, the thumb usable
only as a pincer, like a crab's claw. But Aunty Moss had an amazing set of
cat's cradles for four fingers and a thumb, and rhymes to go with the
figures-
Churn churn cherry all!
Burn burn bury all.'
Come, dragon, come!
-and the string would form four triangles that flicked into a square. . . .
Therru never sang aloud, but Tenar heard her whispering the chant under her
breath as she made the figures, alone, sitting on the doorstep of the mage's
house.
And, Tenar thought, what bond linked her, herself, to the child, beyond pity,
beyond mere duty to the helpless? Lark would have kept her if Tenar had not
taken her. But Tenar had taken her without ever asking herself why. Had she
been following hen heart? Ogion had asked nothing about the child, but he had
said, "They will fear her." And Tenar had replied, "They do," and truly.
Maybe she herself feared the child, as she feared cruelty, and rape, and
fire. Was fear the bond that held her?
"Goha," Therru said, sitting on her heels under the peach tree, looking at
the place in the hard summer dirt where she had planted the peach stone,
"what are dragons?"
"Great creatures," Tenar said, "like lizards, but longer than a ship-bigger
than a house. With wings, like birds. They breathe out fire."
"Do they come here?"
"No," Tenar said.
Therru asked no more.
"Has Aunty Moss been telling you about dragons?"
Therru shook her head. "You did," she said.
"Ah," said Tenar. And presently, "The peach you planted will need water to
grow. Once a day, till the rains come.
Therru got up and trotted off around the corner of the house to the well. Her
legs and feet were perfect, unhurt. Tenar liked to see her walk or run, the
dank, dusty, pretty little feet on the earth. She came back with Ogion's
watering-jug, struggling along with it, and tipped out a small flood oven the
new planting.
"So you remember the story about when people and dragons were all the same. .
. . It told how the humans came here, eastward, but the dragons all stayed in
the far western isles. A long, long way away.
Therru nodded. She did not seem to be paying attention, but when Tenar,
saying "the western isles," pointed out to the sea, Therru turned her face to
the high, bright horizon glimpsed between staked bean-plants and the milking
shed.
A goat appeared on the roof of the milking shed and arranged itself in
profile to them, its head nobly poised; apparently it considered itself to be
a mountain goat.
"Sippy's got loose again," said Tenar.
"Hesssss! Hesssss!" went Thernu, imitating Heathen's goat call; and Heathen
herself appeared by the bean-patch fence, saying "Hesssss!" up at the goat,
which ignored her, gazing thoughtfully down at the beans.
Tenar left the three of them to play the catching-Sippy game. She wandered on
past the bean patch towards the edge of the cliff and along it. Ogion's house
stood apart from the village and closer than any other house to the edge of
the Ovenfell, here a steep, grassy slope broken by ledges and outcrops of
rock, where goats could be pastured. As you went on north the drop grew even
steeper, till it began to fall sheer; and on the path the rock of the great
ledge showed through the soil, till a mile or so north of the village the
Overfell had narrowed to a shelf of reddish sandstone hanging above the sea
that undercut its base two thousand feet below.
Nothing grew at that far end of the Ovenfell but lichens and rockworts
and here and there a blue daisy, wind-stunted, like a button dropped on the
rough, crumbling stone. Inland of the cliff's edge to the north and east,
above a narrow strip of marshland the dark, tremendous side of Gont Mountain
nose up, forested almost to the peak. The cliff stood so high above the bay
that one must look down to see its outer shores and the vague lowlands of
Essany. Beyond them, in all the south and west, there was nothing but the sky
above the sea.
Tenar had liked to go there in the years she had lived in Re Albi. Ogion had
loved the forests, but she, who had lived in a desert where the only trees
for a hundred miles were a gnarled orchard of peach and apple, hand watered
in the endless summers, where nothing grew green and moist and easy, where
there was nothing but a mountain and a great plain and the sky-she liked the
cliff's edge better than the enclosing woods. She liked having nothing at all
over her head.
The lichens, the grey rockwort, the stemless daisies, she liked them too;
they were familiar. She sat down on the shelving rock a few feet from the
edge and looked out to sea as she had used to do. The sun was hot but the
ceaseless wind cooled the sweat on her face and arms. She leaned back on her
hands and thought of nothing, sun and wind and sky and sea filling her,
making her transparent to sun, wind, sky, sea. But her left hand reminded her
of its existence, and she looked round to see what was scratching the heel of
hen hand. It was a tiny thistle, crouched in a crack in the sandstone, barely
lifting its colorless spikes into the light and wind. It nodded stiffly as
the wind blew, resisting the wind, rooted in rock. She gazed at it for a long
time.
When she looked out to sea again she saw, blue in the blue haze where sea met
sky, the line of an island: Orane'a, easternmost of the Inner Isles.
She gazed at that faint dream-shape, dreaming, until a bird flying from the
west over the sea drew her gaze. It was not a gull, for it flew steadily, and
too high to be a pelican. Was it a wild goose, or an albatross, the great,
rare voyager of the open sea, come among the islands? She watched the slow
beat of the wings, far out and high in the dazzling air. Then she got to her
feet, retreating a little from the cliff's edge, and stood motionless, her
heart going hard and hen breath caught in her throat, watching the sinuous,
iron-dark body borne by long, webbed wings as red as fire, the out-reaching
claws, the coils of smoke fading behind it in the air.
Straight to Gont it flew, straight to the Ovenfell, straight to her. She
saw the glitter of rust-black scales and the gleam of the long eye. She saw
the red tongue that was a tongue of flame. The stink of burning filled the
wind, as with a hissing roar the dragon, turning to land on the shelf of
rock, breathed out a sigh of fire.
Its feet clashed on the rock. The thorny tail, writhing, rattled, and the
wings, scarlet where the sun shone through them, stormed and rustled as they
folded down to the mailed flanks. The head turned slowly. The dragon looked
at the woman who stood there within reach of its scythe-blade talons. The
woman looked at the dragon. She felt the heat of its body.
She had been told that men must not look into a dragon's eyes, but that
was nothing to hen. It gazed straight at her from yellow eyes under armored
canapaces wide-set above the narrow nose and flaring, fuming nostrils. And
her small, soft face and dank eyes gazed straight at it.
Neither of them spoke.
The dragon turned its head aside a little so that she was not destroyed when
it did speak, or perhaps it laughed-a great "Hah!" of orange flame.
Then it lowered its body into a crouch and spoke, but not to her.
"A hivaraihe, Ged," it said, mildly enough, smokily, with a flicker of the
burning tongue; and it lowered its head.
Tenar saw for the first time, then, the man astride its back. In the notch
between two of the high sword-thorns that rose in a now down its spine he
sat, just behind the neck and above the shoulders where the wings had root.
His hands were clenched on the rust-dark mail of the dragon's neck and his
head leaned against the base of the sword-thorn, as if he were asleep.
"A hi eheraihe, Ged!" said the dragon, a little louder, its long mouth
seeming always to smile, showing the teeth as long as Tenan's forearm,
yellowish, with white, sharp tips.
The man did not stir.
The dragon turned its long head and looked again at Tenar.
"Sobriost," it said, in a whisper of steel sliding over steel.
That word of the Language of the Making she knew. Ogion had taught her all
she would learn of that tongue. Go up, the dragon said: mount! And she saw
the steps to mount. The taloned foot, the crooked elbow, the shoulderjoint,
the first musculature of the wing: four steps.
She too said, "Hah!" but not in a laugh, only trying to get her breath, which
kept sticking in her throat; and she lowered hen head a moment to stop her
dizzy faintness.
Then she went forward, past the talons and the long lipless mouth and the
long yellow eye, and mounted the shoulder of the dragon. She took the man's
arm. He did not move, but surely he was not dead, for the dragon had brought
him here and spoken to him. "Come on," she said, and then seeing his face as
she loosened the clenched grip of his left hand, "Come on, Ged. Come on. . . .
He raised his head a little. His eyes were open, but unseeing. She had to
climb around him, scratching hen legs on the hot, mailed hide of the dragon,
and unclench his right hand from a horny knob at the base of the sword-thorn.
She got him to take hold of her arms, and so could carry-drag him down those
four strange stairs to earth.
He roused enough to try to hold on to hen, but there was no strength in him.
He sprawled off the dragon onto the rock like a sack unloaded, and lay there.
The dragon turned its immense head and in a completely animal gesture nosed
and sniffed at the man's body.
It lifted its head, and its wings too half lifted with a vast, metallic
sound. It shifted its feet away from Ged, closer to the edge of the cliff.
Turning back the head on the thorned neck, it stared once more directly at
Tenar, and its voice like the dry roar of a kiln-fire spoke: "Thesse
Kalessin."
The sea wind whistled in the dragon's half-open wings. "Thesse Tenar," the
woman said in a clean, shaking voice. The dragon looked away, westward, over
the sea. It twitched its long body with a clink and clash of iron scales,
then abruptly opened its wings, crouched, and leapt straight out from the
cliff onto the wind. The dragging tail scored the sandstone as it passed. The
red wings beat down, lifted, and beat down, and already Kalessin was fan from
land, flying straight, flying west.
Tenar watched it till it was no larger than a wild goose or a gull. The air
was cold. When the dragon had been there it had been hot, furnace-hot, with
the dragon's inward fire. Tenar shivered. She sat down on the rock beside Ged
and began to cry. She hid her face in her arms and wept aloud. "What can I
do?" she cried. "What can I do now?"
Presently she wiped hen eyes and nose on hen sleeve, put back her hair with
both hands, and turned to the man who lay beside her. He lay so still, so
easy on the bare rock, as if he might lie there forever.
Tenar sighed. There was nothing she could do, but there was always the next
thing to be done.
She could not carry him. She would have to get help. That meant leaving him
alone. It seemed to her that he was too near the cliff's edge. If he tried to
get up he might fall, weak and dizzy as he would be. How could she move him?
He did not rouse at all when she spoke and touched him. She took him under
the shoulders and tried to pull him, and to her surprise succeeded; dead
weight as he was, the weight was not much. Resolute, she dragged him ten on
fifteen feet inland, off the bane rock shelf onto a bit of dirt, where dry
bunchgrass gave some illusion of shelter. There she had to leave him. She
could not run, for her legs shook and her breath still came in sobs. She
walked as fast as she could to Ogion's house, calling out as she approached
it to Heather, Moss, and Thenru.
The child appeared around the milking shed and stood, as her way was,
obedient to Tenar's call but not coming forward to greet or be greeted .
"Therru, run into town and ask anyone to come-anybody strong- There's a man
hurt on the cliff."
Therru stood there. She had never gone alone into the village. She was frozen
between obedience and fear. Tenan saw that and said, "Is Aunty Moss here? Is
Heather? The
three of us can carry him. Only, quick, quick, Therru!" She felt that if she
let Ged lie unprotected there he would surely die. He would be gone when she
came back-dead, fallen, taken by dragons. Anything could happen. She must
hurry before it happened. Flint had died of a stroke in his fields and she
had not been with him. He had died alone. The shepherd had found him lying by
the gate. Ogion had died and she could not keep him from dying, she could not
give him breath. Ged had come home to die and it was the end of everything,
there was nothing left, nothing to be done, but she must do it. "Quick,
Therru! Bring anyone!"
She started shakily towards the village herself, but saw old Moss hurrying
across the pasture, stumping along with her thick hawthorn stick. "Did you
call me, dearie?"
Moss's presence was an immediate relief. She began to get her breath and be
able to think. Moss wasted no time in questions, but hearing there was a man
hurt who must be moved, got the heavy canvas mattress-cover that Tenar had
been airing, and lugged it out to the end of the Over-fell. She and Tenan
rolled Ged onto it and were dragging this conveyance laboriously homeward
when Heathen came trotting along, followed by Therru and Sippy. Heathen was
young and strong, and with hen help they could lift the canvas like a litter
and canny the man to the house.
Tenar and Therru slept in the alcove in the west wall of the long single
room. There was only Ogion's bed at the fan end, covered now with a heavy
linen sheet. There they laid the man. Tenar put Ogion's blanket over him,
while Moss muttered charms around the bed, and Heather and Therru stood and
stared .
"Let him be now," said Tenar, leading them all to the front pant of the house.
"Who is he?" Heather asked.
"What was he doing on the Overfell?" Moss asked.
"You know him, Moss. He was Ogion's-Aihal's prentice, once.
The witch shook her head. "That was the lad from Ten Alders, dearie," she
said. "The one that's Anchmage in Roke, now."
Tenan nodded.
"No, dearie," said Moss. "This looks like him. But isn't him. This man's
no mage. Not even a sorcerer."
Heathen looked from one to the other, entertained. She did not understand
most things people said, but she liked to hear them say them.
"But I know him, Moss. It's Sparrowhawk." Saying the name, Ged's
use-name, released a tenderness in her, so that for the first time she
thought and felt that this was he indeed, and that all the years since she
had first seen him were their bond. She saw a light like a star in darkness,
underground, long ago, and his face in the light. "I know him, Moss." She
smiled, and then smiled more broadly. "He's the first man I ever saw," she
said.
Moss mumbled and shifted. She did not like to contradict "Mistress Goha,"
but she was perfectly unconvinced. "There's tricks, disguises,
transformations, changes," she said. "Better be careful, dearie. How did he
get where you found him, away out there? Did any see him come through the
village?"
"None of you-saw-?"
They stared at her. She tried to say "the dragon" and could not. Her lips
and tongue would not form the word. But a word formed itself with them,
making itself with her mouth and breath. "Kalessin," she said.
Therru was staring at her. A wave of warmth, heat, seemed to flow from
the child, as if she were in fever. She said nothing, but moved her lips as
if repeating the name, and that fever heat burned around her.
"Tricks!" Moss said. "Now that our mage is gone there'll be all kinds of
tnicksters coming round."
"I came from Atuan to Havnon, from Havnor to Gont, with Sparnowhawk, in
an open boat," Tenar said drily.
"You saw him when he brought me here, Moss. He wasn't archmage then. But
he was the same, the same man. Are there other scars like those?"
Confronted, the olden woman became still, collecting herself. She glanced
at Therru. "No," she said. "But-"
"Do you think I wouldn't know him?"
Moss twisted her mouth, frowned, rubbed one thumb with the other, looking
at hen hands. "There's evil things in the world, mistress," she said. "A
thing that takes a man's form and body, but his soul's gone-eaten- "The
gebbeth?"
Moss cringed at the word spoken openly. She nodded.
"They do say, once the mage Sparrowhawk came here, long ago, before you
came with him. And a thing of dankness came with him-following him. Maybe it
still does. Maybe-"
"The dragon who brought him here," Tenar said, "called him by his true
name. And I know that name. Wrath at the witch's obstinate suspicion rang in
hen voice.
Moss stood mute. Her silence was better argument than her words.
"Maybe the shadow on him is his death," Tenan said. "Maybe he's dying. I
don't know. If Ogion-"
At the thought of Ogion she was in tears again, thinking how Ged had come
too late. She swallowed the tears and went to the woodbox for kindling for
the fire. She gave Therru the kettle to fill, touching hen face as she spoke
to her. The seamed and slabby scars were hot to touch, but the child was not
feverish. Tenar knelt to make the fire. Somebody in this fine household-a
witch, a widow, a cripple, and a half-wit-had to do what must be done, and
not frighten the child with weeping. But the dragon was gone, and was there
nothing to come any more but death?
Bettering
He lay like the dead but was not dead. Where had he been? What had he come
through? That night, in firelight, Tenar took the stained, worn,
sweat-stiffened clothes off him. She washed him and let him lie naked between
the linen sheet and the blanket of soft, heavy goat's-wool. Though a short,
slight-built man, he had been compact, vigorous; now he was thin as if worn
down to the bone, worn away, fragile. Even the scars that ridged his shoulder
and the left side of his face from temple to jaw seemed lessened, silvery.
And his hair was grey.
I'm sick of mourning, Tenar thought. Sick of mourning, sick of grief. I
will not grieve for him Didn't he come to me riding the dragon? Once I meant
to kill him, she thought. Now I'll make him
live, if I can. She looked at him then with a challenge in her eye, and no
pity.
"Which of us saved the other from the Labyrinth, Ged?"
Unhearing, unmoving, he slept. She was very tired. She bathed in the
water she had heated to wash him with, and crept into bed beside the little,
warm, silky silence that was Therru asleep. She slept, and her sleep opened
out into a vast windy space hazy with rose and gold. She flew. Her voice
called, "Kalessin!" A voice answered, calling from the gulfs of light.
When she woke, the birds were chirping in the fields and on the roof. Sitting
up she saw the light of morning through the gnarled glass of the low window
looking west. There was something in her, some seed or glimmer, too small to
look at or think about, new. Therru was still asleep. Tenar sat by her
looking out the small window at cloud and sunlight, thinking of her daughter
Apple, trying to remember Apple as a baby. Only the faintest glimpse,
vanishing as she turned to it-the small, fat body shaking with a laugh, the
wispy, flying hair..., And the second baby, Spark he got called as a joke,
because he'd been struck off Flint. She did not know his true name. He had
been as sickly a child as Apple had been a sound one. Born early and very
small, he had nearly died of the croup at two months, and for two years after
that it had been like rearing a fledgling sparrow, you never knew if he would
be alive in the morning. But he held on, the little spark wouldn't go out.
And growing, he became a wiry boy, endlessly active, driven; no use on the
farm; no patience with animals, plants, people; using words for his needs
only, never for pleasure and the give and take of love and knowledge.
Ogion had come by on his wanderings when Apple was thirteen and Spark eleven.
Ogion had named Apple then, in the springs of the Kaheda at the valley's
head; beautiful she had walked in the green water, the woman-child, and he
had given her her true name, Hayohe. He had stayed on at Oak Farm a day or
two, and had asked the boy if he wanted to go wandering a little with him in
the forests. Spark merely shook his head. "What would you do if you could?"
the mage had asked him, and the boy said what he had never been able to say
to father or mother: "Go to sea.
after Beech gave him his true name, three years later, he shipped as a sailor
aboard a merchantman trading from Valmouth to Orane'a and North Havnor. From
time to time he would come to the farm, but not often and never for long,
though at his father's death it would be his property. He was white-skinned
like Tenar, but grew tall like Flint, with a narrow face. He had not told his
parents his true name. There might never be anyone he told it to. Tenar had
not seen him for three years now. He might or might not know of his father's
death. He might be dead himself, drowned, but she thought not. He would carry
that spark his life over the waters, through the storms.
That was what it was like in her now, a spark; like the bodily certainty of a
conception; a change, a new thing. What it was she would not ask. You did not
ask. You did not ask a true name. It was given you, or not.
She got up and dressed. Early as it was, it was warm, and she built no fire.
She sat in the doorway to drink a cup of milk and watch the shadow of Gont
Mountain draw inward from the sea. There was as little wind as there could be
on this air-swept shelf of rock, and the breeze had a midsummer feel, soft
and rich, smelling of the meadows. There was a sweetness in the air, a change.
"All changed!" the old man had whispered, dying, joyful. Laying his hand on
hers, giving her the gift, his name, giving it away.
"Aihal!" she whispered. For answer a couple of goats bleated, out behind the
milking shed, waiting for Heather to come. "Be-eh," one said, and the other,
deeper, metallic, "Bla-ah! Bla-ah!" Trust a goat, Flint used to say, to spoil
anything. Flint, a shepherd, had disliked goats. But Sparrowhawk had been a
goatherd, here across the mountain, as a boy.
She went inside. She found Therru standing gazing at the sleeping man. She
put her arm around the child, and though Therm usually shrank from or was
passive to touch or caress, this time she accepted it and perhaps even leaned
a little to Tenar.
Ged lay in the same exhausted, overwhelmed sleep. His face was turned to
expose the four white scars that marked it.
"Was he burned?" Therru whispered.
Tenar did not answer at once. She did not know what those scars were. She had
asked him long ago, in the Painted Room of the Labyrinth of Atuan, jeering:
"A dragon?" And he had answered seriously, "Not a dragon. One of the kinship
of the Nameless Ones; but I learned his name.... And that was all she knew.
But she knew what "burned" meant to the child.
"Yes," she said.
Therru continued to gaze at him. She had cocked her head to bring her one
seeing eye to bear, which made her look like a little bird, a sparrow or a
finch.
"Come along, finchling, birdlet, sleep's what he needs, you need a peach. Is
there a peach ripe this morning?"
Therru trotted out to see, and Tenar followed her.
Eating her peach, the child studied the place where she had planted the peach
pit yesterday. She was evidently disappointed that no tree had grown there,
but she said nothing.
"Water it," said Tenar.
Aunty Moss arrived in the midmorning. One of her skills as a
witch-handywoman was basket making, using the rushes of Overfell Marsh, and
Tenar had asked her to teach her the art. As a child in Atuan, Tenar had
learned how to learn. As a stranger in Gont, she had found that people
liked to teach. She had learned to be taught and so to be accepted, her
foreignness forgiven.
Ogion had taught her his knowledge, and then Flint had taught her his. It was
her habit of life, to learn. There seemed always to be a great deal to be
learned, more than she would have believed when she was a prentice-priestess
or the pupil of a mage.
The rushes had been soaking, and this morning they were to split them, an
exacting but not a complicated business, leaving plenty of attention to spare.
"Aunty," said Tenar as they sat on the doorstep with the bowl of soaking
rushes between them and a mat before them to lay the split ones on, "how do
you tell if a man's a wizard or not?"
Moss's reply was circuitous, beginning with the usual gnomics and
obscurities. "Deep knows deep," she said, deeply, and "What's born will
speak," and she told a story about the ant that picked up a tiny end of hair
from the floor of a palace and ran off to the ants' nest with it, and in the
night the nest glowed underground like a star, for the hair was from the head
of the great mage Brost, But only the wise could see the glowing anthill. To
common eyes it was all dark.
"One needs training, then," said Tenar.
Maybe, maybe not, was the gist of Moss's dark reply. "Some are born with that
gift," she said. "Even when they don't know it, it will be there. Like the
hair of the mage in the hole in the ground, it will shine."
"Yes," said Tenar. "I've seen that." She split and resplit a reed cleanly and
laid the splints on the mat. "How do you know, then, when a man is not a
wizard?"
"It's not there," Moss said, "it's not there, dearie. The power. See now. If
I've got eyes in my head I can see that you have eyes, can't I? And if you're
blind I'll see that. And if you've only got one eye, like the little one, or
if you've got three, I'll see 'em, won't I? But if I don't have an eye to see
with, I won't know if you do till you tell me. But I do. I see, I know. The
third eye!" She touched her forehead and gave a loud, dry chuckle, like a hen
triumphant over an egg. She was pleased with having found the words to say
what she wanted to say. A good deal of her obscurity and cant, Tenar had
begun to realize, was mere ineptness with words and ideas. Nobody had ever
taught her to think consecutively. Nobody had ever listened to what she said.
All that was expected, all that was wanted of her was muddle, mystery,
mumbling. She was a witchwoman. She had nothing to do with clear meaning.
"I understand," Tenar said. "Then-maybe this is a question you don't want to
answer-then when you look at a person with your third eye, with your power,
you see their power-or don't see it?"
"It's more a knowing," Moss said. "Seeing is just a way of saying it. 'Tisn't
like I see you, I see this rush, I see the mountain there. It's a knowing. I
know what's in you and not in that poor hollow-headed Heather, I know what's
in the dear child and not in him in yonder. I know-" She could not get any
farther with it. She mumbled and spat. "Any witch worth a hairpin knows
another witch!" she said finally, plainly, impatiently.
"You recognize each other."
Moss nodded. "Aye, that's it. That's the word. Recognize."
"And a wizard would recognize your power, would know you for a sorceress-"
But Moss was grinning at her, a black cave of a grin in a cobweb of wrinkles.
"Dearie," she said, "a man, you mean, a wizardly man? What's a man of power
to do with us?"
"But Ogion-"
"Lord Ogion was kind," Moss said, without irony.
They split rushes for a while in silence.
"Don't cut your thumb on 'em, dearie," Moss said.
"Ogion taught me. As if I weren't a girl. As if I'd been his prentice,
like Sparrowhawk. He taught me the Language of the Making, Moss. What I asked
him, he told me."
"There wasn't no other like him."
"It was I who wouldn't be taught. I left him. What did I I want with his
books? What good were they to me? I
wanted to live, I wanted a man, I wanted my children, I wanted my life."
She split reeds neatly, quickly, with her nail.
"And I got it," she said.
"Take with the right hand, throw away with the left," the witch said. "Well,
dearie mistress, who's to say? Who's to say? Wanting a man got me into awful
troubles more than once. But wanting to get married, never! No, no. None of
that for me.
"Why not?" Tenar demanded.
Taken aback, Moss said simply, "Why, what man'd marry a witch?" And then,
with a sidelong chewing motion of her jaw, like a sheep shifting its cud,
"And what witch'd marry a man?"
They split rushes.
"What's wrong with men?" Tenar inquired cautiously.
As cautiously, lowering her voice, Moss replied, "I don't know, my dearie.
I've thought on it. Often I've thought on it. The best I can say it is like
this. A man's in his skin, see, like a nut in its shell." She held up her
long, bent, wet fingers as if holding a walnut. "It's hard and strong, that
shell, and it's all full of him. Full of grand man-meat, manself. And that's
all. That's all there is. It's all him and nothing else, inside."
Tenar pondered awhile and finally asked, "But if he's a wizard-"
"Then it's all his power, inside. His power's himself, see. That's how it is
with him. And that's all. When his power goes, he's gone. Empty." She cracked
the unseen walnut and tossed the shells away. "Nothing."
"And a woman, then?"
"Oh, well, dearie, a woman's a different thing entirely. Who knows where a
woman begins and ends? Listen, mistress, I have roots, I have roots deeper
than this island. Deeper than the sea, older than the raising of the lands. I
go back into the dark." Moss's eyes shone with a weird brightness in their
red rims and her voice sang like an instrument. "I go back into the dark!
Before the moon I was. No one knows, no one knows, no one can say what I am,
what a woman is, a woman of power, a woman's power, deeper than the roots of
trees, deeper than the roots of islands, older than the Making, older than
the moon. Who dares ask questions of the dark? Who'll ask the dark its name?"
The old woman was rocking, chanting, lost in her incantation; but Tenar sat
upright, and split a reed down the center with her thumbnail.
"I will," she said. She split another reed.
"I lived long enough in the dark," she said.
She looked in from time to time to see that Sparrowhawk was still
sleeping. She did so now. When she sat down again with Moss, wanting not to
return to what they had been
saying, for the older woman looked dour and sullen, she said, "This morning
when I woke up I felt, oh, as if a new wind were blowing. A change. Maybe
just the weather. Did you feel that?"
But Moss would not say yes or no. "Many a wind blows here on the Overfell,
some good, some ill. Some bears clouds and some fair weather, and some brings
news to those who can hear it, but those who won't listen can't hear. Who am
I to know, an old woman without mage~learning, without book~learning? All my
learning's in the earth, in the dark earth. Under their feet, the proud ones.
Under their feet, the proud lords and mages. Why should they look down, the
learned ones? What does an old witch-woman know?"
She would be a formidable enemy, Tenar thought, and was a difficult friend.
"Aunty," she said, taking up a reed, "I grew up among women. Only women, In
the Kargish lands, far east, in Atuan, I was taken from my family as a little
child to be brought up a priestess in a place in the desert. I don't know
what name it has, all we called it in our language was just that, the place.
The only place I knew. There were a few soldiers guarding it, but they
couldn't come inside the walls. And we couldn't go outside the walls. Only in
a group, all women and girls, with eunuchs guarding us, keeping the men out
of sight."
"What's those you said?"
"Eunuchs?" Tenar had used the Kargish word without thinking. "Gelded men,"
she said.
The witch stared, and said, "Tsekh!" and made the sign to avert evil. She
sucked her lips. She had been startled out of her resentment.
"One of them was the nearest to a mother I had there.. . , But do you
see, Aunty, I never saw a man till I was a woman grown. Only girls and women.
And yet I didn't know what women are, because women were all I did know. Like
men who live among men, sailors, and soldiers, and mages on Roke-do they know
what men are? How can they, if they never speak to a woman?"
"Do they take 'em and do 'em like rams and he-goats," said Moss, "like that,
with a gelding knife?"
Horror, the macabre, and a gleam of vengeance had won out over both anger and
reason. Moss didn't want to pursue any topic but that of eunuchs.
Tenar could not tell her much. She realized that she had never thought about
the matter. When she was a girl in Atuan, there had been gelded men; and one
of them had loved her tenderly, and she him; and she had killed him to escape
from him. Then she had come to the Archipelago, where there were no eunuchs,
and had forgotten them, sunk them in darkness with Manan's body.
"I suppose," she said, trying to satisfy Moss's craving for details, "that
they took young boys, and-" But she stopped. Her hands stopped working.
"Like Therru," she said after a long pause. "What's a child for? What's it
there for? To be used. To be raped, to be gelded- Listen, Moss. When I lived
in the dark places, that was what they did there. And when I came here, I
thought I'd come out into the light, I learned the true words. And I had my
man, I bore my children, I lived well. In the broad daylight, And in the
broad daylight, they did that-to the child. In the meadows by the river. The
river that rises from the spring where Ogion named my daughter. In the
sunlight. I am trying to find out where I can live, Moss. Do you know what I
mean? What I'm trying to say?"
"Well, well," the older woman said; and after a while,
"Dearie, there's misery enough without going looking for it." And seeing
Tenar's hands shake as she tried to split a stubborn reed, she said, again,
"Don't cut your thumb on 'em, dearie. "
It was not till the next day that Ged roused at all. Moss, who was very
skillful though appallingly unclean as a nurse, had succeeded in spooning
some meat-broth into him. "Starving," she said, "and dried up with thirst.
Wherever he was, they didn't do much eating and drinking." And after
appraising him again, "He'll be too far gone already, I think. They get weak,
see, and can't even drink, though it's all they need. I've known a great
strong man to die like that. All in a few days, shriveled to a shadow, like."
But through relentless patience she got a few spoonfuls of her brew of meat
and herbs into him. "Now we'll see," she said. "Too late, I guess. He's
slipping away." She spoke without regret, perhaps with relish. The man was
nothing to her; a death was an event. Maybe she could bury this mage. They
had not let her bury the old one.
Tenar was salving his hands, the next day, when he woke. He must have ridden
long on Kalessin's back, for his fierce grip on the iron scales had scoured
the skin off his palms, and the inner side of the fingers was cut and recut.
Sleeping, he kept his hands clenched as if they would not let go the absent
dragon. She had to force his fingers open gently to wash and salve the sores.
As she did that, he cried out and started, reaching out, as if he felt
himself falling. His eyes opened. She spoke quietly. He looked at her.
"Tenar," he said without smiling, in pure recognition beyond emotion. And it
gave her pure pleasure, like a sweet flavor or a flower, that there was still
one man living who knew her name, and that it was this man.
She leaned forward and kissed his cheek. "Lie still," she said. "Let me
finish this. " He obeyed, drifting back into sleep soon, this time with his
hands open and relaxed.
Later, falling asleep beside Therru in the night, she thought, But I never
kissed him before, And the thought shook her. At first she disbelieved it.
Surely, in all the years- Not in the Tombs, but after, traveling together in
the mountains- In Lookfar, when they sailed together to Havnor- When he
brought her here to Gont-?
No. Nor had Ogion ever kissed her, or she him. He had called her daughter,
and had loved her, but had not touched her; and she, brought up as a
solitary, untouched priestess, a holy thing, had not sought touch, or had not
known she sought it. She would lean her forehead or her cheek for a moment on
Ogion's open hand, and he might stroke her hair, once, very lightly.
And Ged never even that.
Did I never think of it? she asked herself in a kind of incredulous awe.
She did not know. As she tried to think of it, a horror, a sense of
transgression, came on her very strongly, and then died away, meaningless.
Her lips knew the slightly rough, dry, cool skin of his cheek near the mouth
on the right side, and only that knowledge had importance, was of weight.
She slept. She dreamed that a voice called her, "Tenar! Tenar!" and that she
replied, crying like a seabird, flying in the light above the sea; but she
did not know what name she called.
Sparrowhawk disappointed Aunty Moss. He stayed alive. After a day or two
she gave him up for saved. She came and fed him her broth of goat's-meat and
roots and herbs, prop-
ping him against her, surrounding him with the powerful smell of her body,
spooning life into him, and grumbling. Although he had recognized her and
called her by her use-name, and she could not deny that he seemed to be the
man called Sparrowhawk, she wanted to deny it. She did not like him. He was
all wrong, she said. Tenar respected the witch's sagacity enough that this
troubled her, but she could not find any such suspicion in herself, only the
pleasure of his being there and of his slow return to life. "When he's
himself again, you'll see," she said to Moss.
"Himself! " Moss said, and she made that gesture with her fingers of breaking
and dropping a nutshell.
He asked, pretty soon, about Ogion. Tenar had dreaded that question. She had
told herself and nearly convinced herself that he would not ask, that he
would know as mages knew, as even the wizards of Gont Port and Re Albi had
known when Ogion died. But on the fourth morning he was lying awake when she
came to him, and looking up at her, he said, "This is Ogion's house."
"Aihal's house," she said, as easily as she could; it still was not easy for
her to speak the mage's true name. She did not know if Ged had known that
name. Surely he had. Ogion would have told him, or had not needed to tell him.
For a while he did not react, and when he spoke it was without expression.
"Then he is dead."
"Ten days ago."
He lay looking before him as if pondering, trying to think something out.
"When did I come here?"
She had to lean close to understand him.
"Four days ago, in the evening of the day."
"There was no one else in the mountains," he said. Then his body winced and
shuddered as if in pain or the intolerable memory of pain. He shut his eyes,
frowning, and took a deep breath.
As his strength returned little by little, that frown, the held breath and
clenched hands, became familiar to Tenar. Strength returned to him but not
ease, not health.
He sat on the doorstep of the house in the sunlight of the summer afternoon,
It was the longest journey he had yet taken from the bed. He sat on the
threshold, looking out into the day, and Tenar, coming around the house from
the bean patch, looked at him. He still had an ashy, shadowy look to him. It
was not the grey hair only, but some quality of skin and bone, and there was
nothing much to him but that. There was no light in his eyes. Yet this
shadow, this ashen man, was the same whose face she had seen first in the
radiance of his own power, the strong face with hawk nose and fine mouth, a
handsome man. He had always been a proud, handsome man.
She came on towards him.
"The sunlight's what you need," she said to him, and he nodded, but his hands
were clenched as he sat in the flood of summer warmth.
He was so silent with her that she thought maybe it was her presence that
troubled him. Maybe he could not be at ease with her as he had used to be. He
was Archmage now, after all-she kept forgetting that. And it was twenty-five
years since they had walked in the mountains of Atuan and sailed together in
Lookfar across the eastern sea.
"Where is Lookfar?" she asked, suddenly, surprised by the thought of it, and
then thought, But how stupid of me! All those years ago, and he's Archmage,
he wouldn't have that little boat now.
"In Selidor," he answered, his face set in its steady and incomprehensible
misery.
As long ago as forever, as far away as Selidor. . . .
"The farthest island," she said; it was half a question. "The farthest
west," he said.
They were sitting at table, having finished the evening meal. Therru had
gone outside to play.
"It was from Selidor that you came, then, on Kalessin?" When she spoke
the dragon's name again it spoke itself, shaping her mouth to its shape and
sound, making her breath soft fire.
At the name, he looked up at her, one intense glance, which made her realize
that he did not usually meet her eyes at all. He nodded. Then, with a
laborious honesty, he corrected his assent: "From Selidor toRoke. And then
from Roke to Gont."
A thousand miles? Ten thousand miles? She had no idea. She had seen the great
maps in the treasuries of Havnor, but no one had taught her numbers,
distances. As far away as Selidor . . . And could the flight of a dragon be
counted in miles?
"Ged," she said, using his true name since they were alone, "I know you've
been in great pain and peril. And if you don't want, maybe you can't, maybe
you shouldn't tell me-but if I knew, if I knew something of it, I'd be more
help to you, maybe. I'd like to be. And they'll be coming soon from Roke for
you, sending a ship for the Archmage, what do I know, sending a dragon for
you! And you'll be gone again. And we'll never have talked." As she spoke she
clenched her own hands at the falseness of her tone and words. To joke about
the dragon-to whine like an accusing wife!
He was looking down at the table, sullen, enduring, like a farmer after a
hard day in the fields faced with some domestic squall.
"Nobody will come from Roke, I think," he said, and it cost him effort enough
that it was a while before he went on. "Give me time."
She thought it was all he was going to say, and replied, "Yes, of course. I'm
sorry," and was rising to clear the table when he said, still looking down,
not clearly, "I have that, now.
Then he too got up, and brought his dish to the sink, and finished clearing
the table. He washed the dishes while Tenar put the food away. And that
interested her. She had been comparing him to Flint; but Flint had never
washed a dish in his life. Women's work. But Ged and Ogion had lived here,
bachelors, without women; everywhere Ged had lived, it was without women; so
he did the "women's work" and thought nothing about it. It would be a pity,
she thought, if he did think about it, if he started fearing that his dignity
hung by a dishcloth.
Nobody came for him from Roke. When they spoke of it, there had scarcely been
time for any ship but one with the magewind in her sails all the way; but the
days went on, and still there was no message or sign to him. It seemed
strange to her that they would let their archmage go untroubled so long. He
must have forbidden them to send to him; or perhaps he had hidden himself
here with his wizardry, so that they did not know where he was, and so that
he could not be recognized. For the villagers paid curiously little attention
to him still.
That no one had come down from the mansion of the Lord of Re Albi was less
surprising. The lords of that house had never been on good terms with Ogion.
Women of the house had been, so the village tales went, adepts of dark arts.
One had married a northern lord, they said, who buried her alive under a
stone; another had meddled with the unborn child in her womb, trying to make
it a creature of
power, and indeed it had spoken words as it was born, but it had no bones.
"Like a little bag of skin," the midwife whispered in the village, "a little
bag with eyes and a voice, and it never sucked, but it spoke in some strange
tongue, and died " Whatever the truth of such tales, the Lords of Re Albi had
always held aloof. Companion of the mage Sparrowhawk, ward of the mage Ogion,
bringer of the Ring of Erreth-Akbe to Havnor, Tenar might have been asked to
stay, it would seem, at the mansion house when she first came to Re Albi; but
she had not. She had lived instead, to her own delight, alone in a tiny
cottage that belonged to the village weaver, Fan, and she saw the people of
the great house seldom and at a distance. There was now no lady of the house
at all, Moss told her, only the old lord, very old, and his grandson, and the
young wizard, called Aspen, whom they had hired from the School on Roke.
Since Ogion was buried, with Aunty Moss's talisman in his hand, under the
beech tree by the mountain path, Tenar had not seen Aspen. Strange as it
seemed, he did not know the Archmage of Earthsea was in his own village, or,
if he knew it, for some reason kept away. And the wizard of Gont Port, who
had also come to bury Ogion, had never come back either. Even if he did not
know that Ged was here, surely he knew who she was, the White Lady, who had
worn the Ring of Erreth-Akbe on her wrist, who had made whole the Rune of
Peace- And how many years ago was that, old woman! she said to herself. Is
your nose out of joint?
All the same, it was she who had told them Ogion's true name. It seemed some
courtesy was owing.
But wizards, as such, had nothing to do with courtesy. They were men of
power. It was only power that they dealt with. And what power had she now?
What had she ever had? As a girl, a priestess, she had been a vessel: the
power of the dark places had run through her, used her, left her empty,
untouched. As a young woman she had been taught a powerful knowledge by a
powerful man and had laid it aside, turned away from it, not touched it. As a
woman she had chosen and had the powers of a woman, in their time, and the
time was past; her wiving and mothering was done. There was nothing in her,
no power, for anybody to recognize.
But a dragon had spoken to her. "I am Kalessin," it had said, and she had
answered, "I am Tenar. "
"What is a dragonlord?" she had asked Ged, in the dark place, the Labyrinth,
trying to deny his power, trying to make him admit hers; and he had answered
with the plain honesty that forever disarmed her, "A man dragons will talk to.
So she was a woman dragons would talk to. Was that the new thing, the folded
knowledge, the light seed, that she felt in herself, waking beneath the small
window that looked west?
A few days after that brief conversation at table, she was weeding Ogion's
garden patch, rescuing the onions he had set out in spring from the weeds of
summer. Ged let himself in the gate in the high fence that kept the goats
out, and set to weeding at the other end of the row. He worked awhile and
then sat back, looking down at his hands.
"Let them have time to heal," Tenar said mildly. He nodded.
The tall staked bean-plants in the next row were flowering. Their scent was
very sweet. He sat with his thin arms on his knees, staring into the sunlit
tangle of vines and flowers and hanging beanpods. She spoke as she worked:
"When Aihal died, he said, 'All changed. . . .' And since
his death, I've mourned him, I've grieved, but something lifts up my grief.
Something is coming to be born-has been set free. I know in my sleep and my
first waking, something is changed."
"Yes," he said. "An evil ended. And . . . "
After a long silence he began again. He did not look at her, but his voice
sounded for the first time like the voice she remembered, easy, quiet, with
the dry Gontish accent.
"Do you remember, Tenar, when we came first to Havnor?"
Would I forget? her heart said, but she was silent for fear of driving him
back into silence.
"We brought Lookfar in and came up onto the quai-the steps are marble. And
the people, all the people-and you held up your arm to show them the Ring. .
. .
-And held your hand; I was terrified beyond terror: the faces, the voices,
the colors, the towers and the flags and banners, the gold and silver and
music, and all I knew was you-in the whole world all I knew was you, there by
me as we walked. . . .
"The stewards of the King's House brought us to the foot of the Tower of
Erreth-Akbe, through the streets full of people. And we went up the high
steps, the two of us alone. Do you remember?"
She nodded. She laid her hands on the earth she had been weeding, feeling its
grainy coolness.
"I opened the door. It was heavy, it stuck at first. And we went in. Do you
remember?"
It was as if he asked for reassurance- Did it happen? Do I remember?
"It was a great, high hall," she said. "It made me think of my Hall, where I
was eaten, but only because it was so high. The light came down from windows
away up in the tower. Shafts of sunlight crossing like swords."
"And the throne," he said.
"The throne, yes, all gold and crimson. But empty. Like the throne in the
Hall in Atuan. ' '
"Not now," he said. He looked across the green shoots of onion at her. His
face was strained, wistful, as if he named a joy he could not grasp. "There
is a king in Hay-nor," he said, "at the center of the world. What was
foretold has been fulfilled. The Rune is healed, and the world is whole. The
days of peace have come. He-"
He stopped and looked down, clenching his hands.
"He carried me from death to life. Arren of Enlad. Lebannen of the songs to
be sung. He has taken his true name, Lebannen, King of Earthsea. "
"Is that it, then," she asked, kneeling, watching him- "the joy, the coming
into light?"
He did not answer.
A king in Havnor, she thought, and said aloud, "A king in Havnor! ' '
The vision of the beautiful city was in her, the wide streets, the towers of
marble, the tiled and bronze roofs, the white-sailed ships in harbor, the
marvelous throne room where sunlight fell like swords, the wealth and dignity
and harmony, the order that was kept there. From that bright center, she saw
order going outward like the perfect rings on water, like the straightness of
a paved street or a ship sailing before the wind: a going the way it should
go, a bringing to peace.
"You did well, dear friend," she said.
He made a little gesture as if to stop her words, and then turned away,
pressing his hand to his mouth. She could not bear to see his tears. She bent
to her work. She pulled a weed, and another, and the tough root broke. She
dug with
her hands, trying to find the root of the weed in the harsh soil, in the dark
of the earth.
"Goha," said Therru's weak, cracked voice at the gate, and Tenar looked
round. The child's half-face looked straight at her from the seeing eye and
the blinded eye. Tenar thought, Shall I tell her that there is a king in
Havnor?
She got up and went to the gate to spare Therru from trying to make herself
heard. When she lay in the fire unconscious, Beech said, the child had
breathed in fire. "Her voice is burned away," he explained.
"I was watching Sippy," Therru whispered, "but she got out of the
broom-pasture. I can't find her. ' '
It was as long a speech as she had ever made. She was trembling from running
and from trying not to cry. We can't all be weeping at once, Tenar said to
herself-this is stupid, we can't have this!- "Sparrowhawk! ' ' she said,
turning, "there's a goat got out.
He stood up at once and came to the gate.
"Try the springhouse," he said.
He looked at Therru as if he did not see her hideous scars, as if he scarcely
saw her at all: a child who had lost a goat, who needed to find a goat. It
was the goat he saw. "Or she's off to join the village flock," he said.
Therru was already running to the springhouse.
"Is she your daughter?" he asked Tenar. He had never before said a word about
the child, and all Tenar could think for a moment was how very strange men
were.
"No, nor my granddaughter. But my child,' ' she said. What was it that made
her jeer at him, jibe at him, again?
He let himself out the gate, just as Sippy dashed toward them, a
brown-and-white flash, followed far behind by Therru.
"Hi!" Ged shouted suddenly, and with a leap he blocked the goat's way,
heading her directly to the open gate and Tenar's arms. She managed to grab
Sippy's loose leather collar. The goat at once stood still, mild as any lamb,
looking at Tenar with one yellow eye and at the onion-rows with the other.
"Out," said Tenar, leading her out of goat heaven and over to the stonier
pasture where she was supposed to be.
Ged had sat down on the ground, as out of breath as Therru, or more so, for
he gasped, and was evidently dizzy; but at least he was not in tears. Trust a
goat to spoil any-. thing.
"Heather shouldn't have told you to watch Sippy," Tenar said to Therru.
"Nobody can watch Sippy. If she gets out again, tell Heather, and don't
worry. All right?' '
Therru nodded. She was looking at Ged. She seldom looked at people, and very
seldom at men, for longer than a glance; but she was gazing at him steadily,
her head cocked like a sparrow. Was a hero being born?
Worsening
It was well over a month since the solstice, but the evenings were still long
up on the west-facing Overfell. Therru had come in late from an all-day
herbal expedition with Aunty Moss, too tired to eat. Tenar put her to bed and
sat with her, singing to her. When the child was overtired she could not
sleep, but would crouch in the bed like a paralyzed animal, staring at
hallucinations till she was in a nightmare state, neither sleeping nor
waking, and unreachable. Tenar had found she could prevent this by holding
her and singing her to sleep. When she ran out of the songs she had learned
as a farmer's wife in Middle Valley, she sang interminable Kargish chants she
had learned as a child priestess at the Tombs of Atuan, lulling Therru with
the drone and sweet whine of offerings to the Nameless Powers and the Empty
Throne that was now filled with the dust and ruin of earthquake. She felt no
power in those songs but that of song itself; and she liked to sing in her
own language, though she did not know the songs a mother would sing to a
child in Atuan, the songs her mother had sung to her.
Therru was fast asleep at last. Tenar slipped her from her lap to the bed
and waited a moment to be sure she slept on. Then, after a glance round to be
sure she was alone, with an almost guilty quickness, yet with the ceremony of
enjoyment, of great pleasure, she laid her narrow, light-skinned hand along
the side of the child's face where eye and cheek had been eaten away by fire,
leaving slabbed, bald scar. Under her touch all that was gone. The flesh was
whole, a child's round, soft, sleeping face. It was as if her touch restored
the truth.
Lightly, reluctantly, she lifted her palm, and saw the irremediable loss, the
healing that would never be whole.
She bent down and kissed the scar, got up quietly, and went out of the house.
The sun was setting in a vast, pearly haze. No one was about. Sparrowhawk was
probably off in the forest. He had begun to visit Ogion's grave, spending
hours in that quiet place under the beech tree, and as he got more strength
he took to wandering on up the forest paths that Ogion had loved. Food
evidently had no savor to him; Tenar had to ask him to eat. Companionship he
shunned, seeking only to be alone. Therru would have followed him anywhere,
and being as silent as he was she did not trouble him, but he was restless,
and presently would send the child home and go on by himself, farther, to
what ends Tenar did not know. He would come in late, cast himself down to
sleep, and often be gone again before she and the child woke. She would leave
him bread and meat to take with him.
She saw him now coming along the meadow path that had been so long and hard
when she had helped Ogion walk it for the last time. He came through the
luminous air, the wind-bowed grasses, walking steadily, locked in his
obstinate misery, hard as stone.
"Will you be about the house?" she asked him, across some distance. "Therru's
asleep. I want to walk a little."
"Yes. Go on," he said, and she went on, pondering the indifference of a man
towards the exigencies that ruled a woman: that someone must be not far from
a sleeping child, that one's freedom meant another's unfreedom, unless some
ever-changing, moving balance were reached, like the balance of a body moving
forward, as she did now, on two legs, first one then the other, in the
practice of that remarkable art, walking. . . . Then the deepening colors of
the sky and the soft insistence of the wind replaced her thoughts. She went
on walking, without metaphors, until she came to the sandstone cliffs. There
she stopped and watched the sun be lost in the serene, rosy haze.
She knelt and found with her eyes and then with her fingertips a long,
shallow, blurred groove in the rock, scored right out to the edge of the
cliff: the track of Kalessin's tail. She followed it again and again with her
fingers, gazing out into the gulfs of twilight, dreaming. She spoke once. The
name was not fire in her mouth this time, but hissed and dragged softly out
of her lips, "Kalessin. . . ."
She looked up to the east. The summits of Gont Mountain above the forests
were red, catching the light that was gone here below. The color dimmed as
she watched. She looked away and when she looked back the summit was grey,
obscure, the forested slopes dark.
She waited for the evening star. When it shone above the haze, she walked
slowly home.
Home, not home. Why was she here in Ogion's house not in her own farmhouse,
looking after Ogion's goats and onions not her own orchards and flocks?
"Wait," he had said, and she had waited; and the dragon had come; and Ged was
well now-was well enough. She had done her part. She had kept the house. She
was no longer needed. It was time she left.
Yet she could not think of leaving this high ledge, this hawk's nest, and
going down into the lowlands again, the easy farmlands, the windless inlands,
she could not think of that without her heart sinking and darkening. What of
the dream she had here, under the small window looking west? What of the
dragon who had come to her here?
The door of the house stood open as usual for light and air. Sparrowhawk was
sitting without lamp or firelight on a low seat by the swept hearth. He often
sat there. She thought it had been his place when he was a boy here, in his
brief apprenticeship with Ogion, It had been her place, winter days, when she
had been Ogion's pupil.
He looked at her entering, but his eyes had not been on the doorway but
beside it to the right, the dark corner behind the door. Ogion's staff stood
there, an oaken stick, heavy, worn smooth at the grip, the height of the man
himself. Beside it Therru had set the hazel switch and the alder stick Tenar
had cut for them when they were walking to Re Albi.
Tenar thought-His staff, his wizard's staff, yew-wood, Ogion gave it to him-
Where is it?- And at the same time, Why have I not thought of that till now?
It was dark in the house, and seemed stuffy. She was oppressed. She had
wished he would stay to talk with her, but now that he sat there she had
nothing to say to him, nor he to her.
"I've been thinking," she said at last, setting straight the four dishes on
the oaken sideboard, "that it's time I was getting back to my farm."
He said nothing. Possibly he nodded, but her back was turned .
She was tired all at once, wanting to go to bed; but he sat there in the
front part of the house, and it was not yet entirely dark; she could not
undress in front of him. Shame made her angry. She was about to ask him to go
out for a while when he spoke, clearing his throat, hesitant.
"The books. Ogion's books. The Runes and the two Lore-books. Would you be
taking them with you?"
"With me?"
"You were his last student."
She came over to the hearth and sat down across from him on Ogion's
three-legged chair.
"I learned to write the runes of Hardic, but I've forgotten most of that, no
doubt. He taught me some of the language the dragons speak. Some of that I
remember. But nothing else. I didn't become an adept, a wizard. I got
married, you know. Would Ogion have left his books of wisdom to a farmer's
wife?"
After a pause he said without expression, "Did he not leave them to someone,
then?"
"To you, surely."
Sparrowhawk said nothing.
"You were his last prentice, and his pride, and friend. He never said it, but
of course they go to you.
"What am I to do with them?"
She stared at him through the dusk. The western window gleamed faint across
the room. The dour, relentless, unexplaining rage in his voice roused her own
anger.
"You the Archmage ask me? Why do you make a worse fool of me than I am, Ged?"
He got up then. His voice shook. "But don't you-can't you see-all that is
over-is gone!"
She sat staring, trying to see his face.
"I have no power, nothing. I gave it-spent it-all I had. To close- So that-
So it's done, done with."
She tried to deny what he said, but could not.
"Like pouring out a little water," he said, "a cup of water onto the
sand, In the dry land. I had to do that. But now I have nothing to drink. And
what difference, what difference did it make, does it make, one cup of water
in all the desert? Is the desert gone?-Ah! Listen!-It used to whisper that to
me from behind the door there: Listen, listen! And I went into the dry land
when I was young. And I met it there, I became it, I married my death. It
gave me life. Water, the water of life, I was a fountain, a spring, flowing,
giving, But the springs don't run, there. All I had in the end was one cup of
water, and I had to pour it out on the sand, in the bed of the dry river, on
the rocks in the dark. So it's gone. It's over. Done."
She knew enough, from Ogion and from Ged himself, to know what land he spoke
of, and that though he spoke in images they were not masks of the truth but
the truth itself as he had known it. She knew also that she must deny what he
said, no matter if it was true. "You don't give yourself time, Ged," she
said. "Coming back from death must be a long journey-even on the dragon's
back. It will take time. Time and quiet, silence, stillness. You have been
hurt. You will be healed."
For a long while he was silent, standing there. She thought she had said the
right thing, and given him some comfort. But he spoke at last.
"Like the child?"
It was like a knife so sharp she did not feel it come into her body.
"I don't know," he said in the same soft, dry voice, "why you took her,
knowing that she cannot be healed. Knowing what her life must be. I suppose
it's a part of this time we have lived-a dark time, an age of ruin, an ending
time. You took her, I suppose, as I went to meet my enemy, because it was all
you could do. And so we must live on into the new age with the spoils of our
victory over evil. You with your burned child, and I with nothing at all."
Despair speaks evenly, in a quiet voice.
Tenar turned to look at the mage's staff in the dark place to the right of
the door, but there was no light in it. It was all dark, inside and out.
Through the open doorway a couple of stars were visible, high and faint. She
looked at them. She wanted to know what stars they were. She got up and went
groping past the table to the door. The haze had risen and not many stars
were visible. One of those she had seen from indoors was the white summer
star that they called, in Atuan, in her own language, Tehanu. She did not
know the other one. She did not know what they called Tehanu here, in Hardic,
or what its true name was, what the dragons called it. She knew only what her
mother would have called it, Tehanu, Tehanu. Tenar, Tenar . . .
"Ged," she said from the doorway, not turning, "who brought you up, when you
were a child?"
He came to stand near her, also looking out at the misty horizon of the sea,
the stars, the dark bulk of the mountain above them.
"Nobody much," he said. "My mother died when I was a baby. There were some
older brothers. I don't remember them. There was my father the smith. And my
mother's sister. She was the witch of Ten Alders."
"Aunty Moss," Tenar said.
"Younger. She had some power.
"What was her name?"
He was silent.
"I cannot remember," he said slowly.
After a while he said, "She taught me the names. Falcon, pilgrim falcon,
eagle, osprey, goshawk, sparrowhawk
"What do you call that star? The white one, up high."
"The Heart of the Swan," he said, looking up at it. "In Ten Alders they
called it the Arrow."
But he did not say its name in the Language of the Making, nor the true
names the witch had taught him of hawk, falcon, sparrowhawk.
"What I said-in there-was wrong," he said softly. "I shouldn't speak at all.
Forgive me.
"If you won't speak, what can I do but leave you?" She turned to him. "Why do
you think only of yourself? always of yourself? Go outside awhile," she told
him, wrathful. "I want to go to bed."
Bewildered, muttering some apology, he went out; and she, going to the
alcove, slipped out of her clothes and into the bed, and hid her face in the
sweet warmth of Therru's silky nape.
"Knowing what her life must be . . . "
Her anger with him, her stupid denial of the truth of what he told her, rose
from disappointment. Though Lark had said ten times over that nothing could
be done, yet she had hoped that Tenar could heal the burns; and for all her
saying that even Ogion could not have done it, Tenar had hoped that Ged could
heal Therru-could lay his hand on the scar and it would be whole and well,
the blind eye bright, the clawed hand soft, the ruined life intact.
"Knowing what her life must be . . . "
The averted faces, the signs against evil, the horror and curiosity, the
sickly pity and the prying threat, for harm draws harm to it . . . And never
a man's arms. Never anyone to hold her. Never anyone but Tenar. Oh, he was
right, the child should have died, should be dead. They should have let her
go into that dry land, she and Lark and Ivy, meddling old women, softhearted
and cruel. He was right, he was always right. But then, the men who had used
her for their needs and games, the woman who had suffered her to be used-they
had been quite right to beat her unconscious and push her into the fire to
burn to death. Only they had not been thorough. They had lost their nerve,
they had left some life in her. That had been wrong. And everything she,
Tenar, had done was wrong. She had been given to the dark powers as a child:
she had been eaten by them, she had been suffered to be eaten. Did she think
that by crossing the sea, by learning other languages, by being a man s wife,
a mother of children, that by merely living her life, she could ever be
anything but what she was-their servant, their food, theirs to use for their
needs and games? Destroyed, she had drawn the destroyed to her, part of her
own ruin, the body of her own evil.
The child's hair was fine, warm, sweet-smelling. She lay curled up in the
warmth of Tenar's arms, dreaming. What wrong could she be? Wronged, wronged
beyond all repair, but not wrong. Not lost, not lost, not lost. Tenar held
her and lay still and set her mind on the light of her dreaming, the gulfs of
bright air, the name of the dragon, the name of the star, Heart of the Swan,
the Arrow, Tehanu.
She was combing the black goat for the fine underwool that she would spin and
take to a weaver to make into cloth, the silky "fleecefell" of Gont Island.
The old black goat had been combed a thousand times, and liked it, leaning
into the dig and pull of the wire comb-teeth. The grey-black combings grew
into a soft, dirty cloud, which Tenar at last stuffed into a net bag; she
worked some burrs out of the fringes of the goat's ears by way of thanks, and
slapped her barrel flank companionably. "Bah!" the goat said, and trotted
off. Tenar let herself out of the fenced pasture and came around in front of
the house, glancing over the meadow to make sure Therru was still playing
there.
Moss had shown the child how to weave grass baskets, and clumsy as her
crippled hand was, she had begun to get the trick of it. She sat there in the
meadow grass with her work on her lap, but she was not working. She was
watching Sparrowhawk.
He stood a good way off, nearer the cliff's edge. His back was turned, and he
did not know anyone was watching him, for he was watching a bird, a young
kestrel; and she in turn was watching some small prey she had glimpsed in the
grass. She hung beating her wings, wanting to flush the vole or mouse, to
panic it into a rush to its nest. The man stood, as intent, as hungry, gazing
at the bird. Slowly he lifted his right hand, holding the forearm level, and
he seemed to speak, though the wind bore his words away. The kestrel veered,
crying her high, harsh, keening cry, and shot up and off toward the forests.
The man lowered his arm and stood still, watching the bird. The child and the
woman were still. Only the bird flew, went free.
saw the hawk; saw the man; saw the birds come to him, come at his word, at
his naming them, come beating their wings to hold his arm with their fierce
talons; saw herself the hawk, the wild bird.
"He came to me once as a falcon, a pilgrim falcon," Ogion had said, by
the fire, on a winter day. He had been telling her of the spells of Changing,
of transformations, of the mage Bordger who had become a bear. "He flew to
me, to my wrist, out of the north and west. I brought him in by the fire
here. He could not speak. Because I knew him, I was able to help him; he
could put off the falcon, and be a man again, But there was always some hawk
in him. They called him Sparrowhawk in his village because the wild hawks
would come to him, at his word. Who are we? What is it to be a man? Before he
had his name, before he had knowledge, before he had power, the hawk was in
him, and the man, and the mage, and more-he was what we cannot name. And so
are we all."
The girl sitting at the hearth, gazing at the fire, listening,
Mice
Townsend, the sheep-buyer who had brought Ogion's message to the farm in
Middle Valley, came out one afternoon to the mage's house.
"Will you be selling the goats, now Lord Ogion's gone?"
"I might," Tenar said neutrally. She had in fact been wondering how, if she
stayed in Re Albi, she would get on. Like any wizard, Ogion had been
supported by the people his skills and powers served-in his case, anyone on
Gont. He had only to ask and what he needed would be given gratefully, a good
bargain for the goodwill of a mage; but he never had to ask. Rather he had to
give away the excess of food and raiment and tools and livestock and all
necessities and ornaments that were offered or simply left on his doorstep.
"What shall I do with them?" he would demand, perplexed, standing with his
arms full of indignant, squawking chickens, or yards of tapestry, or pots of
pickled beets.
But Tenar had left her living in the Middle Valley. She had not thought
when she left so suddenly of how long she might stay. She had not brought
with her the seven pieces of ivory, Flint's hoard; nor would that money have
been of use in the village except to buy land or livestock, or deal with some
trader up from Gont Port peddling pellawi furs or silks of Lorbanery to the
rich farmers and little lords of Gont. Flint's farm gave her all she and
Therru needed to eat and wear; but Ogion's six goats and his beans and onions
had been for his pleasure rather than his need. She had been living off his
larder, the gifts of villagers who gave to her for his sake, and the
generosity of Aunty Moss. Just yesterday the witch had said, "Dearie, my
ringneck hen's brood's hatched out, and I'll bring you two-three chickies
when they begin to scratch. The mage wouldn't keep 'em, too noisy and silly,
he said, but what's a house without chickies at the door?"
Indeed her hens wandered in and out of Moss's door freely, and slept on her
bed, and enriched the smells of the dark, smoky, reeking room beyond belief.
"There's a brown-and-white yearling nanny will make a fine milch goat," Tenar
said to the sharp-faced man.
"I was thinking of the whole lot," he said. "Maybe. Only five or six of 'em,
right?"
"Six. They're in the pasture up there if you want to have a look."
"I'll do that." But he didn't move. No eagerness, of course, was to be
evinced on either side.
"Seen the great ship come in?" he asked.
Ogion's house looked west and north, and from it one could see only the
rocky headlands at the mouth of the bay, the Armed Cliffs; but from the
village itself at several places one could look down the steep back-and-forth
road to Gont Port and see the docks and the whole harbor. Shipwatching was a
regular pursuit in Re Albi. There were generallY a couple of old men on the
bench behind the smithy, which gave the best view, and though they might
never in their lives have gone down the fifteen zigzag miles of that road to
Gont Port, they watched the comings and goings of ships as a spectacle,
strange yet familiar, provided for their entertainment.
"From Havnor, smith's boy said. He was down in Port bargaining for ingots.
Come up yesterevening late. The great ship's from Havnor Great Port, he said."
He was probably talking to keep her mind off the price of goats, and the
slyness of his look was probably simply the way his eyes were made. But
Havnor Great Port traded little with Gont, a poor and remote island notable
only for wizards, pirates, and goats; and something in the words, "the great
ship," troubled or alarmed her, she did not know why.
"He said they say there's a king in Havnor now," the sheep-buyer went on,
with a sidelong glance.
"That might be a good thing," said Tenar.
Townsend nodded. "Might keep the foreign riffraff out."
Tenar nodded her foreign head pleasantly. "But there's those down in Port
won't be pleased, maybe." He meant the pirate sea-captains of Gont, whose
control of the northeastern seas had been increasing of late years to the
point where many of the old trade-schedules with the central islands of the
Archipelago had been disrupted or abandoned; this impoverished everyone on
Gont except the pirates, but that did not prevent the pirates from being
heroes in the eyes of most Gontishmen. For all she knew, Tenar's son was a
sailor on a pirate ship. And safer, maybe, as such than on a steady
merchantman. Better shark than herring, as they said.
"There's some who're never pleased no matter what," Tenar said, automatically
following the rules of conversation, but impatient enough with them that she
added, rising, "I'll show you the goats. You can have a look. I don't know if
we'll sell all or any." And she took the man to the
broom-pasture gate and left him. She did not like him. It wasn't his fault
that he had brought her bad news once and maybe twice, but his eyes slid, and
she did not like his company. She wouldn't sell him Ogion's goats. Not even
Sippy.
After he had left, bargainless, she found herself uneasy. She had said to
him, "I don't know if we'll sell," and that had been foolish, to say we
instead of 1, when he hadn't asked to speak to Sparrowhawk, hadn't even
alluded to him, as a man bargaining with a woman was more than likely to do,
especially when she was refusing his offer.
She did not know what they made of Sparrowhawk, of his presence and
nonpresence, in the village. Ogion, aloof and silent and in some ways feared,
had been their own mage and their fellow-villager. Sparrowhawk they might be
proud of as a name, the archmage who had lived awhile in Re Albi and done
wonderful things, fooling a dragon in the Ninety Isles, bringing the Ring of
Erreth-Akbe back from somewhere or other; but they did not know him. Nor did
he know them. He had not gone into the village since he came, only to the
forest, the wilderness. She had not thought about it before, but he avoided
the village as surely as Therru did.
They must have talked about him. It was a village, and people talked. But
gossip about the doings of wizards and mages would not go far. The matter was
too uncanny, the lives of men of power were too strange, too different from
their own. "Let be," she had heard villagers in the Middle Valley say when
somebody got to speculating too freely about a visiting weatherworker or
their own wizard, Beech-' 'Let be. He goes his way, not ours.
As for herself, that she should have stayed on to nurse and serve such a
man of power would not seem a questionable matter to them; again it was a
case of "Let be." She had not been very much in the village herself; they
were neither friendly nor unfriendly to her. She had lived there once in
Weaver Fan's cottage, she was the old mage's ward, he had sent Townsend down
round the mountain for her; all that was very well. But then she had come
with the child, terrible to look at, who'd walk about in daylight with it by
choice? And what kind of woman would be a wizard's pupil, a wizard's nurse?
Witchery there, sure enough, and foreign too. But all the same, she was wife
to a rich farmer way down there in the Middle Valley; though he was dead and
she a widow. Well, who could understand the ways of the witchfolk? Let be,
better let be....
She met the Archmage of Earthsea as he came past the garden fence. She said,
"They say there's a ship in from the City of Havnor. "
He stopped. He made a movement, quickly controlled, but it had been the
beginning of a turn to run, to break and run like a mouse from a hawk.
"Ged!" she said. "What is it?"
"I can't, " he said. "I can't face them."
"Who?"
"Men from him. From the king."
His face had gone greyish, as when he was first here, and he looked around
for a place to hide.
His terror was so urgent and undefended that she thought only how to spare
him. "You needn't see them. If anybody comes I'll send them away. Come back
to the house now. You haven't eaten all day."
"There was a man there," he said.
"Townsend, pricing goats. I sent him away. Come on!" He came with her, and
when they were in the house she shut the door.
"They couldn't harm you, surely, Ged. Why would they want to?"
He sat down at the table and shook his head dully. "No, no.
"Do they know you're here?"
"I don't know."
"What is it you're afraid of?" she asked, not impatiently, but with some
rational authority.
He put his hands across his face, rubbing his temples and forehead, looking
down. "I was--" he said. "I'm not- It was all he could say.
She stopped him, saying, "All right, it's all right." She dared not touch him
lest she worsen his humiliation by any semblance of pity. She was angry at
him, and for him. "It's none of their business,' ' she said, "where you are,
or who you are, or what you choose to do or not to do! If they come prying
they can leave curious." That was Lark's saying. She had a pang of longing
for the company of an ordinary, sensible woman. "Anyhow, the ship may have
nothing at all to do with you. They may be chasing pirates home. It ll be a
good thing, too, when the king gets around to doing that.. . . I found some
wine in the back of the cupboard, a couple of bottles, I wonder how long
Ogion had it squirreled away there. I think we'd both do well with a glass of
wine. And some bread and cheese. The little one's had her dinner and gone off
with Heather to catch frogs. There may be frogs' legs for supper. But bread
and cheese for now. And wine. I wonder where it's from, who brought it to
Ogion, how old it is?" So she talked along, woman's babble, saving him from
having to make any answer or misread any silence, until he had got over the
crisis of shame, and eaten a little, and drunk a glass of the old, soft, red
wine.
"It's best I go, Tenar," he said. "Till I learn to be what I am now.
"Go where?' '
"Up on the mountain."
"Wandering-like Ogion?' ' She looked at him. She remembered walking with him
on the roads of Atuan, deriding him: "Do wizards often beg?" And he had
answered, "Yes, but they try to give something in exchange. " '
She asked cautiously, "Could you get on for a while as a weatherworker, or a
finder?" She filled his glass full.
He shook his head. He drank wine, and looked away. "No," he said. "None of
that. Nothing of that."
She did not believe him. She wanted to rebel, to deny, to say to him, How can
it be, how can you say that-as if you'd forgotten all you know, all you
learned from Ogion, and at Roke, and in your traveling! You can't have
forgotten the words, the names, the acts of your art. You learned, you earned
your power!-She kept herself from saying that, but she murmured, "I don't
understand. How can it all . . . ' '
"A cup of water," he said, tipping his glass a little as if to pour it out.
And after a while, ' 'What I don't understand is why he brought me back. The
kindness of the young is cruelty.... So I'm here, I have to get on with it,
till I can go back."
She did not know clearly what he meant, but she heard a note of blame or
complaint that, in him, shocked and angered her. She spoke stiffly: "It was
Kalessin that brought you here."
It was dark in the house with the door closed and only the small western
window letting in the late-afternoon light. She could not make out his
expression; but presently he raised his glass to her with a shadowy smile,
and drank.
"This wine," he said. "Some great merchant or pirate must have brought it to
Ogion. I never drank its equal.
Even in Havnor." He turned the squat glass in his hands, looking down at
it. "I'll call myself something,' ' he said, "and go across the mountain, to
Armouth and the East Forest country, where I came from. They'll be making
hay. There's always work at haying and harvest. "
She did not know how to answer." Fragile and jll~looking, he would be given
such work only out of charity or brutality; and if he got it he would not be
able to do it."
"The roads aren't like they used to be," she said." "These last years,
there's thieves and gangs everywhere. Foreign riffraff, as my friend Townsend
says. But it's not safe any more to go alone."
Looking at him in the dusky light to see how he took this, she wondered
sharply for a moment what it must be like never to have feared a human
being-what it would be like to have to learn to be afraid .
"Ogion still went-'" he began, and then set his mouth; he had recalled that
Ogion had been a mage.
"Down in the south part of the island,' ' Tenar said, "there's a lot of
herding. Sheep, goats, cattle. They drive them up into the hills before the
Long Dance, and pasture them there until the rains. They're always needing
herders. " She drank a mouthful of the wine. It was like the dragon's name in
her mouth." "But why can"t you just stay here?' -
"Not in Ogion's house." The first place they'll come. "Well, what if they do
come? What will they want of you?"
"To be what I was.
The desolation of his voice chilled her.
She was silent, trying to remember what it was like to have been powerful, to
be the Eaten One, the One Priestess of the Tombs of Atuan, and then to lose
that, throw it away, become only Tenar, only herself." She thought about how
it was to have been a woman in the prime of life, with children and a man,
and then to lose all that, becoming old and a widow, powerless." But even so
she did not feel she understood his shame, his agony of humiliation. Perhaps
only a man could feel so. A woman got used to shame.
Or maybe Aunty Moss was right, and when the meat was out the shell was empty."
Witch-thoughts, she thought. And to turn his mind and her own, and because
the soft, fiery wine made her wits and tongue quick, she said, "Do you know,
I've thought-about Ogion teaching me, and I wouldn't go on, but went and
found myself my farmer and married him-I thought, when I did that, I thought
on my wedding day, Ged will be angry when he hears of this!" She laughed as
she spoke."
"I was, " he said." She waited. He said, "I was disappointed." "Angry," she
said." "Angry," he said. He poured her glass full.
"I had the power to know power, then,' ' he said. "And you-you shone, in that
terrible place, the Labyrinth, that darkness
"Well, then, tell me: what should I have done with my power, and the
knowledge Ogion tried to teach me?' '
"Use it."
"How?"
"As the Art Magic is used.""
"By whom?"
"Wizards," he said, a little painfully."
"Magic means the skills, the arts of wizards, of mages?"" "What else
would it mean?"
"Is that all it could ever mean? " '
He pondered, glancing up at her once or twice. "When Ogion taught me,"
she said, "here-at the hearth there-the words of the Old Speech, they were as
easy and as hard in my mouth as in his." That was like learning the
language I spoke before I was born. But the rest-the lore, the runes of
power, the spells, the rules, the raising of the forces-that was all dead to
me. Somebody else's language. I used to think, I could be dressed up as a
warrior, with a lance and a sword and a plume and all, but it wouldn t fit,
would it? What would I do with the sword? Would it make me a hero? I'd be
myself in clothes that didn't fit, is all, hardly able to walk."
She sipped her wine.
"So I took it all off," she said, "and put on my own clothes."
"What did Ogion say when you left him?' '
"What did Ogion usually say?"
That roused the shadowy smile again." He said nothing.
She nodded.
After a while, she went on more softly, "He took me because you brought me to
him. He wanted no prentice after you, and he never would have taken a girl
but from you, at your asking. But he loved me. He did me honor. And I loved
and honored him." But he couldn't give me what I wanted, and I couldn't take
what he had to give me. He knew that." But, Ged, it was a different matter
when he saw Therru." The day before he died. You say, and Moss says, that
power knows power." I don't know what he saw in her, but he said, 'Teach
her!' And he said . . .
Ged waited."
"He said, 'They will fear her."' And he said, 'Teach her all! Not Roke."'
I don't know what he meant." How can I know? If I had stayed here with him I
might know, I might be able to teach her. But I thought, Ged will come, he'll
know. He'll know what to teach her, what she needs to know, my wronged one.""
"I do not know," he said, speaking very low. "I saw- In the child I see
only-the wrong done. The evil."
He drank off his wine."
"I have nothing to give her," he said.
There was a little scraping knock at the door." He started up instantly with
that same helpless turn of the body, looking for a place to hide.
Tenar went to the door, opened it a crack, and smelled Moss before she saw
her."
"Men in the village,' ' the old woman whispered dramatically. "All kind of
fine folk come up from the Port, from the great ship that's in from Havnor
City, they say." Come after the Archmage, they say.
"He doesn't want to see them,' ' Tenar said weakly. She had no idea what to
do.
"I dare say not," said the witch." And after an expectant pause, "Where is
he, then?"
"Here," said Sparrowhawk, coming to the door and opening it wider. Moss eyed
him and said nothing."
"Do they know where I am?"
"Not from me," Moss said."
"If they come here," said Tenar, "all you have to do is send them away-after
all, you are the Archmage-' '
Neither he nor Moss was paying attention to her.
"They won't come to my house," Moss said." "Come on, if you like."
He followed her, with a glance but no word to Tenar.
"But what am I to tell them?" she demanded.
"Nothing, dearie," said the witch.
Heather and Therru came back from the marshes with seven dead frogs in a
net bag, and Tenar busied herself cutting off and skinning the legs for the
hunters' supper. She was just finishing when she heard voices outside, and
looking up at the open door saw people standing at it-men in hats, a twist of
gold, a glitter- "Mistress Goha?' ' said a civil voice."
"Come in!" she said."
They came in: five men, seeming twice as many in the low-ceilinged room, and
tall, and grand. They looked about them, and she saw what they saw.
They saw a woman standing at a table, holding a long, sharp knife. On the
table was a chopping board and on that, to one side, a little heap of naked
greenish-white legs; to the other, a heap of fat, bloody, dead frogs. In the
shadow behind the door something lurked-a child, but a child deformed,
mismade, half-faced, claw-handed." On a bed in an alcove beneath the single
window sat a big, bony young woman, staring at them with her mouth wide open.
Her hands were bloody and muddy and her dank skirt smelled of marsh-water.
When she saw them look at her, she tried to hide her face with her skirt,
baring her legs to the thigh.
They looked away from her, and from the child, and there was no one else to
look at but the woman with the dead frogs.
"Mistress Goha," one of them repeated."
"So I'm called," she said.
"We come from Havnor, from the King," said the civil voice." She could
not see his face clearly against the light. "We seek the Archmage,
Sparrowhawk of Gont." King Lebannen is to be crowned at the turn of autumn,
and he seeks to have the Archmage, his lord and friend, with him to make
ready for the coronation, and to crown him, if he will.""
The man spoke steadily and formally, as to a lady in a palace." He wore sober
breeches of leather and a linen shirt dusty from the climb up from Gont Port,
but it was fine cloth, with embroidery of gold thread at the throat."
"He's not here," Tenar said."
A couple of little boys from the village peered in at the door and drew back,
peered again, fled shouting.
"Maybe you can tell us where he is, Mistress Goha," said the man.
"I cannot."
She looked at them all. The fear of them she had felt at first-caught from
Sparrowhawk's panic, perhaps, or mere foolish fluster at seeing strangers-was
subsiding. Here she stood in Ogion's house; and she knew well enough why
Ogion had never been afraid of great people."
"You must be tired after that long road,' ' she said. "Will you sit down?
There's wine." Here, I must wash the glasses."
She carried the chopping board over to the sideboard, put the frogs' legs in
the larder, scraped the rest into the swill-pail that Heather would carry to
Weaver Fan's pigs, washed her hands and arms and the knife at the basin,
poured fresh water, and rinsed out the two glasses she and Sparrowhawk had
drunk from." There was one other glass in the cabinet, and two clay cups
without handles. She set these on the table, and poured wine for the
visitors; there was just enough left in the bottle to go round. They had
exchanged glances, and had not sat down." The shortage of chairs excused
that. The rules of hospitality, however, bound them to accept what she
offered. Each man took glass or cup from her with a polite murmur." Saluting
her, they drank.
"My word!" said one of them.
"Andrades-the Late Harvest, said another, with round eyes."
A third shook his head." "Andrades-the Dragon Year," he said solemnly."
The fourth nodded and sipped again, reverent." The fifth, who was the
first to have spoken, lifted his clay cup to Tenar again and said, "You honor
us with a king's wine, mistress.""
"It was Ogion's," she said. "This was Ogion's house. This is Aihal's house."
You knew that, my lords?"
"We did, mistress. The king sent us to this house, believing that the
archmage would come here; and, when word of the death of its master came to
Roke and I-Iavnor, yet more certain of it." But it was a dragon that bore the
archmage from Roke. And no word or sending has come from him since then to
Roke or to the king. And it is much in the king's heart, and much in the
interest of us all, to know the archmage is here, and is well. Did he come
here, mistress?"
"I cannot say," she said, but it was a poor equivocation, repeated, and she
could see that the men thought so. She drew herself up, standing behind the
table." "I mean that I will not say. I think if the archmage wishes to come,
he will come." If he wishes not to be found, you will not find him. Surely
you will not seek him out against his will."
The oldest of the men, and the tallest, said, "The king's will is ours."
The first speaker said more conciliatingly, "We are only messengers. What is
between the king and the archmage of the Isles is between them. We seek only
to bring the message, and the reply."
"If I can, I will see that your message reaches him."
"And the reply?' ' the oldest man demanded."
She said nothing, and the first speaker said, "We'll be here some few days at
the house of the Lord of Re Albi, who, hearing of our ship's arrival, offered
us his hospitality. ' '
She felt a sense of a trap laid or a noose tightening, though she did not
know why. Sparrowhawk's vulnerability, his sense of his own weakness, had
infected her." Distraught, she used the defense of her appearance, her
seeming to be a mere goodwife, a middle-aged housekeeper-but was it seeming?
It was also truth, and these matters were more subtle even than the guises
and shape-changes of wizards.- She ducked her head and said, "That will be
more befitting your lordships' comfort. You see we live very plain here, as
the old mage did.""
"And drink Andrades wine," said the one who had identified the vintage, a
bright-eyed, handsome man with a winning smile. She, playing her part, kept
her head down. But as they took their leave and filed out, she knew that,
seem what she might and be what she might, if they did not know now that she
was Tenar of the Ring they would know it soon enough; and so would know that
she herself knew the archmage and was indeed their way to him, if they were
determined to seek him out."
When they were gone, she heaved a great sigh." Heather did so too, and then
finally shut her mouth, which had hung open all the time they were there.
"I never," she said, in a tone of deep, replete satisfaction, and went to see
where the goats had got to."
Therru came out from the dark place behind the door, where she had barricaded
herself from the strangers with Ogion's staff and Tenar's alder stick and her
own hazel switch. She moved in the tight, sidling way she had mostly
abandoned since they had been here, not looking up, the
ruined half of her face bent down towards the shoulder.
Tenar went to her and knelt to hold her in her arms. "Therru,' ' she
said, "they won't hurt you. They mean no harm."
The child would not look at her. She let Tenar hold her like a block of
wood."
"If you say so, I won't let them in the house again."
After a while the child moved a little and asked in her hoarse, thick
voice, "What will they do to Sparrowhawk?' '
"Nothing," Tenar said. "No harm! They come-they mean to do him honor."
But she had begun to see what their attempt to do him honor would do to
him-denying his loss, denying him his grief for what he had lost, forcing him
to act the part of what he was no longer.
When she let the child go, Therru went to the closet and fetched out Ogion's
broom." She laboriously swept the floor where the men from Havnor had stood,
sweeping away their footprints, sweeping the dust of their feet out the door,
off the doorstep.
Watching her, Tenar made up her mind.
She went to the shelf where Ogion's three great books stood, and rummaged
there. She found several goose quills and a half-dried-up bottle of ink, but
not a scrap of paper or parchment." She set her jaw, hating to do damage to
anything so sacred as a book, and scored and tore out a thin strip of paper
from the blank endsheet of the Book of Runes. She sat at the table and dipped
the pen and wrote." Neither the ink nor the words came easy." She had
scarcely written anything since she had sat at this same table a quarter of a
century ago, with Ogion looking over her shoulder, teaching her the runes of
Hardic and the Great Runes of Power." She wrote:
go oak farm in midi valy to clerbrook
say goha sent to look to garden & sheep
It took her nearly as long to read it over as it had to write it. By now
Therru had finished her sweeping and was watching her, intent.
She added one word:
to-night
"Where's Heather?' ' she asked the child, as she folded the paper on
itself once and twice. "I want her to take this to Aunty Moss's house."
She longed to go herself, to see Sparrowhawk, but dared not be seen going,
lest they were watching her to lead them to him.
"I'll go," Therru whispered." Tenar looked at her sharply.
"You'll have to go alone, Therru. Past the village."
The child nodded."
"Give it only to him!"
She nodded again.
Tenar tucked the paper into the child's pocket, held her, kissed her, let her
go." Therru went, not crouching and sidling now but running freely, flying,
Tenar thought, seeing her vanish in the evening light beyond the dark
door-frame, flying like a bird, a dragon, a child, free."
Hawks
Therru was back soon with Sparrowhawk's reply: "He said he'll leave tonight."
Tenar heard this with satisfaction, relieved that he had accepted her
plan, that he would get clear away from these messengers and messages he
dreaded. It was not till she had fed Heather and Therm their frog-leg feast,
and put Therru to bed and sung to her, and was sitting up alone without lamp
or firelight, that her heart began to sink. He was gone. He was not strong,
he was bewildered and uncertain, he needed friends; and she had sent him away
from those who were and those who wished to be his friends. He was gone, and
she must stay, to keep the hounds from his trail, to learn at least whether
they stayed in Gont or sailed back to Havnor."
His panic and her obedience to it began to seem so unreasonable to her that
she thought it equally unreasonable, improbable, that he would in fact go."
He would use his wits and simply hide in Moss's house, which was the last
place in all Earthsea that a king would look for an archmage." It would be
much better if he stayed there till the king's men left." Then he could come
back here to Ogion's house, where he belonged, And it would go on as before,
she looking after him until he had his strength back, and he giving her his
dear companionship.
A shadow against the stars in the doorway: "Hsssst! Awake?" Aunty Moss came
in. "Well, he's off," she said, conspiratorial, jubilant. "Went the old
forest road. Says he'll cut down to the Middle Valley way, along past Oak
Springs, tomorrow."
"Good," said Tenar.
Bolder than usual, Moss sat down uninvited. "I gave him a loaf and a bit of
cheese for the way."
"Thank you, Moss. That was kind."
"Mistress Goha." Moss's voice in the darkness took on the singsong resonance
of her chanting and spellcasting. "There's a thing I was wanting to say to
you, dearie, without going beyond what I can know, for I know you've lived
among great folks and been one of 'em yourself, and that seals my mouth when
I think of it. And yet there's things I know that you've had no way of
knowing, for all the learning of the runes, and the Old Speech, and all
you've learned from the wise, and in the foreign lands."
"That's so, Moss."
"Aye, well, then. So when we talked about how witch knows witch, and power
knows power, and I said-of him who's gone now-that he was no mage now,
whatever he had been, and still you would deny it-But I was right, wasn't I?"
"Yes."
"Aye. I was.
"He said so himself."
"0' course he did. He don't lie nor say this is that and that's this till you
don't know which end's up, I'll say that for him. He's not one tries to drive
the cart without the ox, either. But I'll say flat out I'm glad he's gone,
for it wouldn't do, it wouldn't do any longer, being a different matter with
him now, and all."
Tenar had no idea what she was talking about, except for her image of trying
to drive the cart without the ox. "I don't know why he's so afraid," she
said. "Well, I know in part, but I don't understand it, why he feels such
shame. But I know he thinks that he should have died. And I know that all I
understand about living is having your work to do, and being able to do it.
That's the pleasure, and the glory, and all. And if you can't do the work, or
it's taken from you, then what's any good? You have to have something
Moss listened and nodded as at words of wisdom, but after a slight pause she
said, "It's a queer thing for an old man to be a boy of fifteen, no doubt!"
Tenar almost said, "What are you talking about, Moss?' '-but something
prevented her. She realized that she had been listening for Ged to come into
the house from his roaming on the mountainside, that she was listening for
the sound of his voice, that her body denied his absence. She glanced
suddenly over at the witch, a shapeless lump of black perched on Ogion's
chair by the empty hearth.
"Ah!" she said, a great many thoughts suddenly coming into her mind all at
once.
"That's why," she said. "That's why I never-"
After a quite long silence, she said, "Do they-do wizards-is it a spell?"
"Surely, surely, dearie," said Moss. "They witch 'em-selves. Some'll tell you
they make a trade-off, like a mar-riage turned backward, with vows and all,
and so get their power then. But to me that's got a wrong sound to it, like a
dealing with the Old Powers more than what a true witch deals with. And the
old mage, he told me they did no such thing. Though I've known some woman
witches do it, and come to no great harm by it.
"The ones who brought me up did that, promising virginity."
"Oh, aye, no men, you told me, and them yurnix. Terrible!"
"But why, but why-why did I never think-"
The witch laughed aloud. "Because that's the power of 'em, dearie. You don't
think! You can't! And nor do they, once they've set their spell. How could
they? Given their power? It wouldn't do, would it, it wouldn't do. You don't
get without you give as much. That's true for all, surely. So they know that,
the witch men, the men of power, they know that better than any. But then,
you know, it's an uneasy thing for a man not to be a man, no matter if he can
call the sun down from the sky. And so they put it right out of mind, with
their spells of binding. And truly so. Even in these bad times we've been
having, with the spells going wrong and all, I haven't yet heard of a wizard
breaking those spells, seeking to use his power for his body's lust. Even the
worst would fear to. 0' course, there's those will work illusions, but they
only fool 'emselves. And there's witch men of little account, witch-tinkers
and the like, some of them'll try their own spells of beguilement on country
women, but for all I can see, those spells don't amount to much. What it is,
is the one power's as great as the other, and each goes its own way. That's
how I see it."
Tenar sat thinking, absorbed. At last she said, "They set themselves apart."
"Aye. A wizard has to do that."
"But you don't."
"Me? I'm only an old witchwoman, dearie."
"How old?"
After a minute Moss's voice in the darkness said, with a hint of laughter in
it, "Old enough to keep out of trouble."
"But you said . . . You haven't been celibate."
"What's that, dearie?"
"Like the wizards."
"Oh, no. No, no! Never was anything to look at, but there was a way I could
look at them.. . not witching, you know, dearie, you know what I mean. . .
there's a way to look, and he'd come round, sure as a crow will caw, in a day
or two or three he'd come around my place-' I need a cure for my dog's
mange,' 'I need a tea for my sick granny,' -but I knew what it was they
needed, and if I liked 'em well enough maybe they got it. And for love, for
love-I'm not one o' them, you know, though maybe some witches are, but they
dishonor the art, I say. I do my art for pay but I take my pleasure for love,
that's what I say. Not that it's all pleasure, all that. I was crazy for a
man here for a long time, years, a good-looking man he was, but a hard, cold
heart. He's long dead. Father to that Townsend who's come back here to live,
you know him. Oh, I was so heartset on that man I did use my art, I spent
many a charm on him, but 'twas all wasted. All for nothing. No blood in a
turnip. . . . And I came up here to Re Albi in the first place when I was a
girl because I was in trouble with a man in Gont Port. But I can't talk of
that, for they were rich, great folks. 'Twas they had the power, not I! They
didn't want their son tangled with a common girl like me, foul slut they
called me, and they'd have had me put out of the way, like killing a cat, if
I hadn't run off up here. But oh, I did like that lad, with his round, smooth
arms and legs and his big, dark eyes, I can see him plain as plain after all
these years. . . .
They sat a long while silent in the darkness.
"When you had a man, Moss, did you have to give up your power?"
"Not a bit of it," the witch said, complacent.
"But you said you don't get unless you give. Is it different, then, for men
and for women?"
"What isn't, dearie?"
"I don't know," Tenar said. "It seems to me we make up most of the
differences, and then complain about 'em. I don't see why the Art Magic, why
power, should be different for a man witch and a woman witch. Unless the
power itself is different. Or the art."
"A man gives out, dearie. A woman takes in."
Tenar sat silent but unsatisfied.
"Ours is only a little power, seems like, next to theirs," Moss said. "But it
goes down deep. It's all roots. It's like an old blackberry thicket. And a
wizard's power's like a fir tree, maybe, great and tall and grand, but it'll
blow right down in a storm. Nothing kills a blackberry bramble." She gave her
hen-chuckle, pleased with her comparison. "Well, then!" she said briskly. "So
as I said, it's maybe just as well he's on his way and out o' the way, lest
people in the town begin to talk." "To talk?"
"You're a respectable woman, dearie, and her reputation is a woman's wealth."
"Her wealth," Tenar repeated in the same blank way; then she said it again:
"Her wealth. Her treasure. Her hoard. Her value She stood up, unable to
sit still, stretching her back and arms. "Like the dragons who found caves,
who built fortresses for their treasure, for their hoard, to be safe, to
sleep on their treasure, to be their treasure. Take in, take in, and never
give out!"
"You'll know the value of a good reputation," Moss said drily, "when you've
lost it. 'Tisn't everything. But it's hard to fill the place of."
"Would you give up being a witch to be respectable, Moss?"
"I don't know," Moss said after a while, thoughtfully. "I
don't know as I'd know how. I have the one gift, maybe, but not the other."
Tenar went to her and took her hands. Surprised at the gesture, Moss got up,
drawing away a little; but Tenar drew her forward and kissed her cheek.
The older woman put up one hand and timidly touched Tenar's hair, one caress,
as Ogion had used to do. Then she pulled away and muttered about having to go
home, and started to leave, and asked at the door, "Or would you rather I
stayed, with them foreigners about?"
"Go on," Tenar said. "I'm used to foreigners."
That night as she lay going to sleep she entered again into the vast gulfs of
wind and light, but the light was smoky, red and orange-red and amber, as if
the air itself were fire. In this element she was and was not; flying on the
wind and being the wind, the blowing of the wind, the force that went free;
and no voice called to her.
In the morning she sat on the doorstep brushing out her hair. She was not
fair to blondness, like many Kargish people; her skin was pale, but her hair
dark. It was still dark, hardly a thread of grey in it. She had washed it,
using some of the water that was heating to wash clothes in, for she had
decided the laundry would be her day's work, Ged being gone, and her
respectability secure. She dried her hair in the sun, brushing it, In the
hot, windy morning, sparks followed the brush and crackled from the flying
ends of her hair.
Therru came to stand behind her, watching. Tenar turned and saw her so intent
she was almost trembling.
"What is it, birdlet?"
"The fire flying out," the child said, with fear or exultation. "All over the
sky!"
"It's just the sparks from my hair," Tenar said, a little taken aback. Therru
was smiling, and she did not know if she had ever seen the child smile
before. Therru reached out both her hands, the whole one and the burned, as
if to touch and follow the flight of something around Tenar's loose, floating
hair. "The fires, all flying out," she repeated, and she laughed.
At that moment Tenar first asked herself how Therru saw her-saw the world-and
knew she did not know: that she could not know what one saw with an eye that
had been burned away. And Ogion's words, They wi/I fear her, returned to her;
but she felt no fear of the child. Instead, she brushed her hair again,
vigorously, so the sparks would fly, and once again she heard the little
husky laugh of delight.
She washed the sheets, the dishcloths, her shifts and spare dress, and
Therm's dresses, and laid them out (after making sure the goats were in the
fenced pasture) in the meadow to dry on the dry grass, weighting down the
things with stones, for the wind was gusty, with a late-summer wildness in it.
Therm had been growing. She was still very small and thin for her age, which
must be about eight, but in the last couple of months, with her injuries
healed at last and free of pain, she had begun to run about more and to eat
more. She was fast outgrowing her clothes, hand-me-downs from Lark's
youngest, a girl of five.
Tenar thought she might walk into the village and visit with Weaver Fan and
see if he might have an end or two of cloth to give in exchange for the swill
she had been sending for his pigs. She would like to sew something for
Therru. And she would like to visit with old Fan, too. Ogion's death and
Ged's illness had kept her from the village and the people she had known
there. They had pulled her away, as ever, from what she knew, what she knew
how to do, the world she had chosen to live in-a world not of kings and
queens, great powers and dominions, high arts and journeys and adventures
(she thought as she made sure Therru was with Heather, and set off into
town), but of common people doing common things, such as marrying, and
bringing up children, and farming, and sewing, and doing the wash. She
thought this with a kind of vengefulness, as if she were thinking it at Ged,
now no doubt halfway to Middle Valley. She imagined him on the road, near the
dell where she and Therru had slept. She imagined the slight, ashen-haired
man going along alone and silently, with half a loaf of the witch's bread in
his pocket, and a load of misery in his heart.
"It's time you found out, maybe," she thought to him. "Time you learned that
you didn't learn everything on Roke!" As she harangued him thus in her mind,
another image came into it: she saw near Ged one of the men who had stood
waiting for her and Therru on that road. Involuntarily she said, "Ged, be
careful!"-fearing for him, for he did not carry even a stick. It was not the
big fellow with hairy lips that she saw, but another of them, a youngish man
with a leather cap, the one who had stared hard at Therru.
She looked up to see the little cottage next to Fan's house, where she had
lived when she lived here. Between it and her a man was passing. It was the
man she had been remembering, imagining, the man with a leather cap. He was
going past the cottage, past the weaver's house; he had not seen her. She
watched him walk on up the village street without stopping. He was going
either to the turning of the hill road or to the mansion house.
Without pausing to think why, Tenar followed him at a distance until she saw
which turn he took. He went on up the hill to the domain of the Lord of Re
Albi, not down the road that Ged had gone.
She turned back then, and made her visit to old Fan.
Though almost a recluse, like many weavers, Fan had been kind in his shy way
to the Kargish girl, and vigilant. How many people, she thought, had
protected her respectability! Now nearly blind, Fan had an apprentice who did
most of the weaving. He was glad to have a visitor. He sat as if in state in
an old carved chair under the object from which his use-name came: a very
large painted fan, the treasure of his family-the gift, so the story went, of
a generous sea-pirate to his grandfather for some speedy sail-making in time
of need. It was displayed open on the wall. The delicately painted men and
women in their gorgeous robes of rose and jade and azure, the towers and
bridges and banners of Havnor Great Port, were all familiar to Tenar as soon
as she saw the fan again. Visitors to Re Albi were often brought to see it.
It was the finest thing, all agreed, in the village.
She admired it, knowing it would please the old man, and because it was
indeed very beautiful, and he said, "You've not seen much to equal that, in
all your travels, eh?"
"No, no. Nothing like it in Middle Valley at all," said she.
"When you was here, in my cottage, did I ever show you the other side of it?"
"The other side? No," she said, and nothing would do then but he must get the
fan down; only she had to climb up and do it, carefully untacking it, since
he could not see well enough and could not climb up on the chair. He directed
her anxiously. She laid it in his hands, and he peered with his dim eyes at
it, half closed it to make sure the ribs played freely, then closed it all
the way, turned it over, and handed it to her.
"Open it slow," he said.
She did so. Dragons moved as the folds of the fan moved. Painted faint and
fine on the yellowed silk, dragons of pale red, blue, green moved and
grouped, as the figures on the other side were grouped, among clouds and
mountain peaks.
"Hold it up to the light," said old Fan.
She did so, and saw the two sides, the two paintings, made one by the light
flowing through the silk, so that the clouds and peaks were the towers of the
city, and the men and women were winged, and the dragons looked with human
eyes.
"You see?"
"I see," she murmured.
"I can't, now, but it's in my mind's eye. I don't show many that.''
"It is very wonderful."
"I meant to show it to the old mage," Fan said, "but with one thing and
another I never did."
Tenar turned the fan once more before the light, then remounted it as it had
been, the dragons hidden in darkness, the men and women walking in the light
of day.
Fan took her out next to see his pigs, a fine pair, fattening nicely towards
autumn sausages. They discussed Heather's shortcomings as a swill-carrier.
Tenar told him that she fancied a scrap of cloth for a child's dress, and he
was delighted, pulling out a full width of fine linen sheeting for her, while
the young woman who was his apprentice, and who seemed to have taken up his
unsociability as well as his craft, clacked away at the broad loom, steady
and scowling.
Walking home, Tenar thought of Therru sitting at that loom. It would be a
decent living. The bulk of the work was dull, always the same over, but
weaving was an honorable trade and in some hands a noble art. And people
expected weavers to be a bit shy, often to be unmarried, shut away at their
work as they were; yet they were respected. And working indoors at a loom,
Therru would not have to show her face. But the claw hand? Could that hand
throw the shuttle, warp the loom?
And was she to hide all her life?
But what was she to do? "Knowing what her life must be..."
Tenar set herself to think of something else. Of the dress she would make.
Lark's daughter's dresses were coarse homespun, plain as mud. She could dye
half this width, yellow maybe, or with red madder from the marsh; and then a
full apron or overdress of white, with a ruffle to it. Was the child to be
hidden at a loom in the dark and never have a ruffle to her skirt? And that
would still leave enough for a shift, and a second apron if she cut out
carefully.
"Therru!" she called as she approached the house. Heather and Therru had been
in the broom-pasture when she left. She called again, wanting to show Therru
the material and tell her about the dress. Heather came gawking around from
the springhouse, hauling Sippy on a rope.
"Where's Therru?"
"With you," Heather replied so serenely that Tenar looked around for the
child before she understood that Heather had no idea where she was and had
simply stated what she wished to be true.
"Where did you leave her?"
Heather had no idea. She had never let Tenar down before; she had seemed to
understand that Therm had to be kept more or less in sight, like a goat. But
maybe it was Therru all along who had understood that, and had kept herself
in sight? So Tenar thought, as having no comprehensible guidance from
Heather, she began to look and call for the child, receiving no response.
She kept away from the cliff's edge as long as she could. Their first day
there, she had explained to Therru that she must never go alone down the
steep fields below the house or along the sheer edge north of it, because
one-eyed vision cannot judge distance or depth with certainty. The child had
obeyed. She always obeyed. But children forget. But she would not forget. But
she might get close to the edge without knowing it. But surely she had gone
to Moss's house. That was it-having been there alone, last night, she would
go again. That was it, of course.
She was not there. Moss had not seen her.
"I'll find her, I'll find her, dearie," she assured Tenar; but instead of
going up the forest path to look for her as Tenar had hoped she would, Moss
began to knot up her hair in preparation for casting a spell of finding.
Tenar ran back to Ogion's house, calling again and again. And this time she
looked down the steep fields below the house, hoping to see the little figure
crouched playing among the boulders. But all she saw was the sea, wrinkled
and dark, at the end of those falling fields, and she grew dizzy and
sick-hearted .
She went to Ogion's grave and a short way past it up the forest path,
calling. As she came back through the meadow, the kestrel was hunting in the
same spot where Ged had watched it hunt. This time it stooped, and struck,
and rose with some little creature in its talons. It flew fast to the forest.
She's feeding her young, Tenar thought. All kinds of thoughts went through
her mind very vivid and precise, as she passed the laundry laid out on the
grass, dry now, she must take it up before evening. She must search around
the house, the springhouse, the milking shed, more carefully. This was her
fault. She had caused it to happen by thinking of making Therru into a
weaver, shutting her away in the dark to work, to be respectable. When Ogion
had said
"Teach her, teach her all, Tenar!" When she knew that a wrong that cannot be
repaired must be transcended. When she knew that the child had been given her
and she had failed in her charge, failed her trust, lost her, lost the one
great gift.
She went into the house, having searched every corner of the other buildings,
and looked again in the alcove and round the other bed. She poured herself
water, for her mouth was dry as sand.
Behind the door the three sticks of wood, Ogion's staff and the walking
sticks, moved in the shadows, and one of them said, "Here."
The child was crouched in that dark corner, drawn into her own body so that
she seemed no bigger than a little dog, head bent down to the shoulder, arms
and legs pulled tight in, the one eye shut.
"Little bird, little sparrow, little flame, what is wrong? What happened?
What have they done to you now?"
Tenar held the small body, closed and stiff as stone, rocking it in her arms.
"How could you frighten me so? How could you hide from me? Oh, I was so
angry!"
She wept, and her tears fell on the child's face.
"Oh Therru, Therru, Therru, don't hide away from me!" A shudder went through
the knotted limbs, and slowly they loosened. Therru moved, and all at once
clung to Tenar, pushing her face into the hollow between Tenar's breast and
shoulder, clinging tighter, till she was clutching desperately. She did not
weep. She never wept; her tears had been burned out of her, maybe; she had
none. But she made a long, moaning, sobbing sound.
Tenar held her, rocking her, rocking her. Very, very slowly the desperate
grip relaxed . The head lay pillowed on Tenar's breast.
"Tell me," the woman murmured, and the child answered in her faint, hoarse
whisper, "He came here."
Tenar's first thought was of Ged, and her mind, still moving with the
quickness of fear, caught that, saw who "he" was to her, and gave it a wry
grin in passing, but passed on, hunting. "Who came here?"
No answer but a kind of internal shuddering.
"A man," Tenar said quietly, "a man in a leather cap."
Therru nodded once.
"We saw him on the road, coming here."
No response.
"The four men-the ones I was angry at, do you remember? He was one of them."
But she recalled how Therru had held her head down, hiding the burned side,
not looking up, as she had always done among strangers.
"Do you know him, Therru?"
"Yes."
"From-from when you lived in the camp by the river?"
One nod.
Tenar's arms tightened around her.
"He came here?" she said, and all the fear she had felt turned as she spoke
into anger, a rage that burned in her the length of her body like a rod of
fire. She gave a kind of laugh- "Hah!"-and remembered in that moment
Kalessin, how Kalessin had laughed.
But it was not so simple for a human and a woman. The fire must be contained,
And the child must be comforted.
"Did he see you?"
"I hid."
Presently Tenar said, stroking Therru's hair, "He will never touch you,
Therru. Understand me and believe me: he will never touch you again. He'll
never see you again unless I'm with you, and then he must deal with me. Do
you understand, my dear, my precious, my beautiful? You need not fear him.
You must not fear him. He wants you to fear him. He feeds on your fear. We
will starve him, Therru. We'll starve him till he eats himself. Till he
chokes gnawing on the bones of his own hands. . . . Ah, ah, ah, don't listen
to me now, I'm only angry, only angry. . . . Am I red? Am I red like a
Gontishwoman, now? Like a dragon, am I red?" She tried to joke; and Therru,
lifting her head, looked up into her face from her own crumpled, tremulous,
fire-eaten face and said, "Yes. You are a red dragon."
The idea of the man's coming to the house, being in the house, coming
around to look at his handiwork, maybe thinking of improving on it, that idea
whenever it recurred to Tenar came less as a thought than as a queasy fit, a
need to vomit, But the nausea burned itself out against the anger.
They got up and washed, and Tenar decided that what she felt most of all just
now was hunger. "I am hollow," she said to Therru, and set them out a
substantial meal of bread and cheese, cold beans in oil and herbs, a sliced
onion, and dry sausage. Therru ate a good deal, and Tenar ate a great deal.
As they cleared up, she said, "For the present, Therru, I won't leave you at
all, and you won't leave me. Right? And we should both go now to Aunty Moss's
house. She was making a spell to find you, and she needn't bother to go on
with it, but she might not know that."
Therm stopped moving. She glanced once at the open doorway, and shrank away
from it.
"We need to bring in the laundry, too. On our way back. And when we're back,
I'll show you the cloth I got today. For a dress. For a new dress, for you. A
red dress."
The child stood, drawing in to herself.
"If we hide, Therru, we feed him. We will eat. And we will starve him. Come
with me.
The difficulty, the barrier of that doorway to the outside was tremendous to
Therru. She shrank from it, she hid her face, she trembled, stumbled, it was
cruel to force her to cross it, cruel to drive her out of hiding, but Tenar
was without pity. "Come!" she said, and the child came.
They walked hand~in~hand acrosS the fields to Moss's house. Once or twice
Therru managed to look up.
Moss was not surprised to see them, but she had a queer, wary look about her.
She told Therru to run inside her house to see the ringneck hen's new chicks
and choose which two might be hers; and Therru disappeared at once into that
refuge.
"She was in the house all along," Tenar said. "Hiding." "Well she might,"
said Moss.
"Why?" Tenar asked harshly. She was not in the hid~
ing vein. "
"There's-there's beings about, the witch said, not por~ tentously but
uneasily.
"There's scoundrels about!" said Tenar, and Moss looked at her and drew back
a little.
"Eh, now, she said. "Eh, dearie. You have a fire around you, a shining of
fire all about your head. I cast the spell to find the child, but it didn't
go right. It went its own way somehow, and I don't know yet if it's ended.
I'm bewildered. I saw great beings. I sought the little girl but I saw them,
flying in the mountains, flying in the clouds, And now you have that about
you, like your hair was afire. What's amiss, what's wrong?"
"A man in a leather cap," Tenar said. "A youngish man. Well enough looking.
The shoulder seam of his vest's torn. Have you seen him round?"
Moss nodded. "They took him on for the haying at the mansion house."
"I told you that she"-Tenar glanced at the house-"was with a woman and two
men? He's one of them."
"You mean, one of them that-"
"Yes."
Moss stood like a wood carving of an old woman, rigid, a block. "I don't
know," she said at last. "I thought I knew enough. But I don't. What- What
would- Would he come to-to see her?"
"If he's the father, maybe he's come to claim her."
"Claim her?"
"She's his property."
Tenar spoke evenly. She looked up at the heights of Gont Mountain as she
spoke.
"But I think it's not the father. I think this is the other one. The one that
came and told my friend in the village that the child had 'hurt herself.' "
Moss was still bewildered, still frightened by her own conjurations and
visions, by Tenar's fierceness, by the presence of abominable evil. She shook
her head, desolate. "I don't know," she said. "I thought I knew enough. How
could he come back?"
"To eat," Tenar said. "To eat. I won't be leaving her alone again. But
tomorrow, Moss, I might ask you to keep her here an hour or so, early in the
day. Would you do that, while I go up to the manor house?"
"Aye, dearie. Of course. I could put a hiding spell on her, if you like. But
. . . But they're up there, the great men from the King's City.. . .
"Why, then, they can see how life is among the common folk," said Tenar, and
Moss drew back again as if from a rush of sparks blown her way from a fire in
the wind.
Finding Words
They were making hay in the lord's long meadow, strung out across the slope
in the bright shadows of morning. Three of the mowers were women, and of the
two men one was a boy, as Tenar could make out from some distance, and the
other was stooped and grizzled. She came up along the mown rows and asked one
of the women about the man with the leather cap.
"Him from down by Valmouth, ah," said the mower. "Don't know where he's got
to." The others came along the row, glad of a break. None of them knew where
the man from Middle Valley was or why he wasn't mowing with them. "That kind
don't stay," the grizzled man said. "Shiftless. You know him, miss's?"
"Not by choice," said Tenar. "He came lurking about my place-frightened the
child. I don't know what he's called, even.
"Calls himself Handy," the boy volunteered. The others looked at her or
looked away and said nothing. They were beginning to piece out who she must
be, the Kargish woman in the old mage's house. They were tenants of the Lord
of Re Albi, suspicious of the villagers, leery of anything to do with Ogion.
They whetted their scythes, turned away, strung out again, fell to work.
Tenar walked down from the hillside field, past a row of walnut trees, to the
road.
On it a man stood waiting. Her heart leapt. She strode on to meet him.
It was Aspen, the wizard of the mansion house. He stood gracefully leaning on
his tall pine staff in the shade of a roadside tree. As she came out onto the
road he said, "Are you looking for work?"
"No."
"My lord needs field hands. This hot weather's on the turn, the hay must be
got in."
To Goha, Flint's widow, what he said was appropriate, and Goha answered him
politely, "No doubt your skill can turn the rain from the fields till the
hay's in." But he knew she was the woman to whom Ogion dying had spoken his
true name, and, given that knowledge, what he said was so insulting and
deliberately false as to serve as a clear warning. She had been about to ask
him if he knew where the man Handy was. Instead, she said, "I came to say to
the overseer here that a man he took on for the haymaking left my village as
a thief and worse, not one he'd choose to have about the place. But it seems
the man's moved on."
She gazed calmly at Aspen until he answered, with an effort, "I know nothing
about these people."
She had thought him, on the morning of Ogion's death, to be a young man, a
tall, handsome youth with a grey cloak and a silvery staff. He did not look
as young as she had thought him, or he was young but somehow dried and
withered. His stare and his voice were now openly contemptuous, and she
answered him in Goha's voice: "To be sure. I beg your pardon." She wanted no
trouble with him. She made to go on her way back to the village, but Aspen
said, "Wait!"
She waited.
"'A thief and worse,' you say, but slander's cheap, and a woman's tongue
worse than any thief. You come up here to make had blood among the field
hands, casting calumny and lies, the dragonseed every witch sows behind her.
Did you think I did not know you for a witch? When I saw that foul imp that
clings to you, do you think I did not know how it was begotten, and for what
purposes? The man did well who tried to destroy that creature, but the job
should be completed. You defied me once, across the body of the old wizard,
and I forbore to punish you then, for his sake and in the presence of others.
But now you've come too far, and I warn you, woman! I will not have you set
foot on this domain. And if you cross my will or dare so much as speak to me
again, I will have you driven from Re Albi, and off the Overfell, with the
dogs at your heels. Have you understood me?"
"No," Tenar said. "I have never understood men like you.
She turned and set off down the road.
Something like a stroking touch went up her spine, and her hair lifted up on
her head. She turned sharp round to see the wizard reach out his staff
towards her, and the dark lightnings gather round it, and his lips part to
speak. She thought in that moment, Because Ged has lost his magery, I thought
all men had, but I was wrong/-And a civil voice said, "Well, well. What have
we here?"
Two of the men from Havnor had come out onto the road from the cherry
orchards on the other side of it. They looked from Aspen to Tenar with bland
and courtly expressions, as if regretting the necessity of preventing a
wizard from laying a curse on a middle-aged widow, but really, really, it
would not do.
"Mistress Goha," said the man with the gold-embroidered shirt, and bowed to
her.
The other, the bright-eyed one, saluted her also, smiling. "Mistress Goha,"
he said, "is one who, like the King, bears her true name openly, I think, and
unafraid. Living in Gont, she may prefer that we use her Gontish name. But
knowing her deeds, I ask to do her honor; for she wore the Ring that no woman
wore since Elfarran." He dropped to one knee as if it were the most natural
thing in the world, took Tenar's right hand very lightly and quickly, and
touched his forehead to her wrist. He released her and stood up, smiling that
kind, collusive smile.
"Ah," said Tenar, flustered and warmed right through- "there's all kinds of
power in the world!-Thank you."
The wizard stood motionless, staring. He had closed his mouth on the curse
and drawn back his staff, but there was still a visible darkness about it and
about his eyes.
She did not know whether he had known or had just now learned that she was
Tenar of the Ring. It did not matter. He could not hate her more. To be a
woman was her fault. Nothing could worsen or amend it, in his eyes; no
punishment was enough. He had looked at what had been done to Therru, and
approved.
"Sir," she said now to the older man, "anything less than honesty and
openness seems dishonor to the king, for whom you speak-and act, as now. I'd
like to honor the king, and his messengers. But my own honor lies in silence,
until my friend releases me. I-I'm sure, my lords, that he'll send some word
to you, in time. Only give him time, I pray you.
"Surely," said the one, and the other, "As much time as he wants. And your
trust, my lady, honors us above all."
She went on down the road to Re Albi at last, shaken by
the shock and change of things, the wizard's flaying hatred, her own angry
contempt, her terror at the sudden knowledge of his will and power to do her
harm, the sudden end of that terror in the refuge offered by the envoys of
the king-the men who had come in the white-sailed ship from the haven itself,
the Tower of the Sword and the Throne, the center of right and order. Her
heart lifted up in gratitude. There was indeed a king upon that throne, and
in his crown the chiefest jewel would be the Rune of Peace.
She liked the younger man's face, clever and kindly, and the way he had knelt
to her as to a queen, and his smile that had a wink hidden in it. She turned
to look back. The two envoys were walking up the road to the mansion house
with the wizard Aspen. They seemed to be conversing with him amicably, as if
nothing had happened.
That sank her surge of hopeful trust a bit. To be sure, they were courtiers.
It wasn't their business to quarrel, or to judge and disapprove. And he was a
wizard, and their host's wizard. Still, she thought, they needn't have walked
and talked with him quite so comfortably.
The men from Havnor stayed several days with the Lord of Re Albi, perhaps
hoping that the archmage would change his mind and come to them, but they did
not seek him, nor press Tenar about where he might be. When they left at
last, Tenar told herself that she must make up her mind what to do. There was
no real reason for her to stay here, and two strong reasons for leaving:
Aspen and Handy, neither of whom could she trust to let her and Therru alone.
Yet she found it hard to make up her mind, because it was hard to think
of going. In leaving Re Albi now she left Ogion, lost him, as she had not
lost him while she kept his house and weeded his onions. And she thought, "I
will never dream of the sky, down there." Here, where Kalessin had come, she
was Tenar, she thought. Down in Middle Valley she would only be Goha again.
She delayed. She said to herself, "Am I to fear those scoundrels, to run from
them? That's what they want me to do. Are they to make me come and go at
their will?" She said to herself, "I'll just finish the cheese-making." She
kept Therru always with her. And the days went by.
Moss came with a tale to tell. Tenar had asked her about the wizard Aspen,
not telling her the whole story but saying that he had threatened her-which,
in fact, might well be all he had meant to do. Moss usually kept clear of the
old lord's domain, but she was curious about what went on there, and not
unwilling to find the chance to chat with some acquaintances there, a woman
from whom she had learned midwifery and others whom she had attended as
healer or finder. She got them talking about the doings at the mansion house.
They all hated Aspen and so were quite ready to talk about him, but their
tales must be heard as half spite and fear. Still, there would be facts among
the fancies. Moss herself attested that until Aspen came three years ago, the
younger lord, the grandson, had been fit and well, though a shy, sullen man,
"scared-like," she said. Then about the time the young lord's mother died,
the old lord had sent to Roke for a wizard- "What for? With Lord Ogion not a
mile away? And they're all witchfolk themselves in the mansion."
But Aspen had come. He had paid his respects and no more to Ogion, and
always, Moss said, stayed up at the mansion. Since then, less and less had
been seen of the grandson, and it was said now that he lay day and night in
bed, "like a sick baby, all shriveled up," said one of the women who had been
into the house on some errand. But the old lord, "a hundred years old, or
near, or more," Moss insisted-she had no fear of numbers and no respect for
them-the old lord was flourishing, "full of juice," they said. And one of the
men, for they would have only men wait on them in the mansion, had told one
of the women that the old lord had hired the wizard to make him live forever,
and that the wizard was doing that, feeding him, the man said, off the
grandson's life, And the man saw no harm in it, saying, "Who wouldn't want to
live forever?"
"Well," Tenar said, taken aback. "That's an ugly story. Don't they talk about
all this in the village?"
Moss shrugged. It was a matter of "Let be" again. The doings of the powerful
were not to be judged by the powerless, And there was the dim, blind loyalty,
the rootedness in place: the old man was their lord, Lord of Re Albi, nobody
else's business what he did... . Moss evidently felt this herself. "Risky,"
she said, "bound to go wrong, such a trick," but she did not say it was
wicked.
No sign of the man Handy had been seen up at the mansion. Longing to be sure
that he had left the Overfell, Tenar asked an acquaintance or two in the
village if they had seen such a man, but she got unwilling and equivocal
replies. They wanted no part of her affairs. "Let be. . . . Only old Fan
treated her as a friend and fellow-villager. And that might be because his
eyes were so dim he could not clearly see Therru.
She took the child with her now when she went into the village, or any
distance at all from the house.
Therru did not find this bondage wearisome. She stayed close by Tenar as a
much younger child would do, working with her or playing. Her play was with
cat's cradle, basket making, and with a couple of bone figures that Tenar had
found in a little grass bag on one of Ogion's shelves. There was an animal
that might be a dog or a sheep, a figure that might be a woman or a man. To
Tenar they had no sense of power or danger about them, and Moss said, "Just
toys." To Therru they were a great magic. She moved them about in the
patterns of some silent story for hours at a time; she did not speak as she
played. Sometimes she built houses for the person and the animal, stone
cairns, huts of mud and straw. They were always in her pocket in their grass
bag. She was learning to spin; she could hold the distaff in the burned hand
and twist the drop-spindle with the other. They had combed the goats
regularly since they had been there, and by now had a good sackful of silky
goathair to be spun.
"But I should be teaching her," Tenar thought, distressed. "Teach her all,
Ogion said, and what am I teaching her? Cooking and spinning?" Then another
part of her mind said in Goha's voice, "And are those not true arts, needful
and noble? Is wisdom all words?"
Still she worried over the matter, and one afternoon while Therru was pulling
the goathair to clean and loosen it and she was carding it, in the shade of
the peach tree, she said, "Therru, maybe it's time you began to learn the
true names of things. There is a language in which all things bear their true
names, and deed and word are one. By speaking that tongue Segoy raised the
islands from the deeps. It is the language dragons speak."
The child listened, silent.
Tenar laid down her carding combs and picked up a small stone from the
ground. "In that tongue," she said, "this is tolk. "
Therru watched what she did and repeated the word, tolk, but without voice,
only forming it with her lips, which were drawn back a little on the right
side by the scarring.
The stone lay on Tenar's palm, a stone.
They were both silent.
"Not yet," Tenar said. "That's not what I have to teach you now." She let the
stone fall to the ground, and picked up her combs and a handful of cloudy
grey wool Therru had prepared for carding. "Maybe when you have your true
name, maybe that will be the time. Not now. Now, listen. Now is the time for
stories, for you to begin to learn the stories. I can tell you stories of the
Archipelago and of the Kargad Lands. I told you a story I learned from my
friend Aihal the Silent. Now I'll tell you one I learned from my friend Lark
when she told it to her children and mine. This is the story of Andaur and
Avad . As long ago as forever, as far away as Selidor, there lived a man
called Andaur, a woodcutter, who went up in the hills alone. One day, deep in
the forest, he cut a great oak tree down. As it fell it cried out to him in a
human voice. . . .
It was a pleasant afternoon for them both.
But that night as she lay by the sleeping child, Tenar could not sleep.
She was restless, concerned with one petty anxiety after another-did I fasten
the pasture gate, does my hand ache from carding or is it arthritis
beginning, and so on. Then she became very uneasy, thinking she heard noises
outside the house. Why haven't I got me a dog? she thought. Stupid, not to
have a dog. A woman and child living alone ought to have a dog these days.
But this is Ogion's house! Nobody would come here to do evil. But Ogion is
dead, dead, buried at the roots of the tree at the forest's edge. And no one
will come. Sparrowhawk's gone, run away. Not even Sparrowhawk anymore, a
shadow man, no good to anyone, a dead man forced to be alive, And I have no
strength, there's no good in me. I say the word of the Making and it dies in
my mouth, it is meaningless. A stone. I am a woman, an old woman, weak,
stupid. All I do is wrong. All I touch turns to ashes, shadow, stone. I am
the creature of darkness, swollen with darkness. Only fire can cleanse me.
Only fire can eat me, eat me away like-She sat up and cried out aloud in her
own language, "The curse be turned, and turn!"-and brought her right arm out
and down, pointing straight to the closed door. Then leaping out of bed, she
went to the door, flung it open, and said into the cloudy night, "You come
too late, Aspen. I was eaten long ago. Go clean your own house!"
There was no answer, no sound, but a faint, sour, vile smell of
burning-singed cloth or hair.
She shut the door, set Ogion's staff against it, and looked to see that
Therru still slept. She did not sleep herself, that night.
In the morning she took Therru into the village to ask Fan if he would want
the yarn they had been spinning, It was an excuse to get away from the house
and to be for a little while among people. The old man said he would be glad
to weave the yarn, and they talked for a few minutes, under the great painted
fan, while the apprentice scowled and clacked away grimly at the loom. As
Tenar and Therru left Fan's house, somebody dodged around the corner of the
little cottage where she had lived. Something, wasps or bees, were stinging
Tenar's neck and head, and there was a patter of rain all round, a
thundershower, but there were no clouds- Stones. She saw the pebbles strike
the ground. Therru had stopped, startled and puzzled, looking around. A
couple of boys ran from behind the cottage, half hiding, half showing
themselves, calling out to each other, laughing.
"Come along," Tenar said steadily, and they walked to Ogion's house.
Tenar was shaking, and the shaking got worse as they walked. She tried to
conceal it from Therru, who looked troubled but not frightened, not having
understood what had happened.
As soon as they entered the house, Tenar knew someone had been there while
they were in the village. It smelled of burned meat and hair. The coverlet of
their bed had been disarranged .
When she tried to think what to do, she knew there was a spell on her. It had
been laid waiting for her. She could not stop shaking, and her mind was
confused, slow, unable to decide. She could not think. She had said the word,
the true name of the stone, and it had been flung at her, in her face-in the
face of evil, the hideous face- She had dared speak- She could not speak- She
thought, in her own language, I cannot think in Hardic. I must not.
She could think, in Kargish. Not quickly. It was as if she had to ask the
girl Arha, who she had been long ago, to come out of the darkness and think
for her. To help her. As she had helped her last night, turning the wizard's
curse back on him. Arha had not known a great deal of what Tenar and Goha
knew, but she had known how to curse, and how to live in the dark, and how to
be silent.
It was hard to do that, to be silent. She wanted to cry out. She wanted to
talk-to go to Moss and tell her what had happened, why she must go, to say
good-bye at least. She tried to say to Heather, "The goats are yours now,
Heather," and she managed to say that in Hardic, so that Heather would
understand, but Heather did not under-stand. She stared and laughed. "Oh,
they're Lord Ogion's goats!" she said.
"Then-you-" Tenar tried to say "go on keeping them for him," but a deadly
sickness came into her and she heard her voice saying shrilly, "fool,
halfwit, imbecile, woman!" Heather stared and stopped laughing. Tenar covered
her own mouth with her hand. She took Heather and turned her to look at the
cheeses ripening in the milking shed, and pointed to them and to Heather,
back and forth, until Heather nodded vaguely and laughed again because she
was acting so queer.
Tenar nodded to Therru-come!-and went into the house, where the foul smell
was stronger, making Therru cower.
Tenar fetched out their packs and their travel shoes. In her pack she put her
spare dress and shifts, Therru's two old dresses and the half-made new one
and the spare cloth; the spindle whorls she had carved for herself and
Therru; and a little food and a clay bottle of water for the way. In Therru's
pack went Therru's best baskets, the bone person and the bone animal in their
grass bag, some feathers, a little maze-mat Moss had given her, and a bag of
nuts and raisins.
She wanted to say, "Go water the peach tree," but dared not. She took the
child out and showed her. Therru watered the tiny shoot carefully.
They swept and straightened up the house, working fast, in silence.
Tenar set a jug back on the shelf and saw on the other end of the shelf the
three great books, Ogion's books.
Arha saw them and they were nothing to her, big leather boxes full of paper.
But Tenar stared at them and bit her knuckle, frowning with the effort to
decide, to know what to do, and to know how to carry them. She could not
carry them. But she must. They could not stay here in the desecrated house,
the house where hatred had come in. They were his. Ogion's. Ged's.
Hers. The knowledge. Teach her all! She emptied their wool and yarn from the
sack she had meant to carry it in and put the books in, one atop the other,
and tied the neck of the bag with a leather strap with a loop to hold it by.
Then she said, "We must go now, Therru." She spoke in Kargish, but the
child's name was the same, it was a Kargish word, flame, flaming; and she
came, asking no questions, carrying her little hoard in the pack on her back.
They took up their walking sticks, the hazel shoot and the alder branch. They
left Ogion's staff beside the door in the dark corner. They left the door of
the house wide open to the wind from the sea.
An animal sense guided Tenar away from the fields and away from the hill road
she had come by. She took a shortcut down the steep-falling pastures, holding
Therru's hand, to the wagon road that zigzagged down to Gont Port. She knew
that if she met Aspen she was lost, and thought he might be waiting for her
on the way. But not, maybe, on this way.
After a mile or so of the descent she began to be able to think. What she
thought first was that she had taken the right road. For the Hardic words
were coming back to her, and after a while, the true words, so that she
stooped and picked up a stone and held it in her hand, saying in her mind,
tolk; and she put that stone in her pocket. She looked out into the vast
levels of air and cloud and said in her mind, once, Kalessin. And her mind
cleared, as that air was clear.
They came into a long cutting shadowed by high, grassy banks and outcrops of
rock, where she was a little uneasy. As they came out onto the turn they saw
the dark-blue bay below them, and coming into it between the Armed Cliffs a
beautiful ship under full sail. Tenar had feared the last such ship, but not
this one. She wanted to run down the road to meet it.
That she could not do. They went at Therru's pace. It was a better pace than
it had been two months ago, and going downhill made it easy, too, But the
ship ran to meet them. There was a magewind in her sails; she came across the
bay like a flying swan. She was in port before Tenar and Therru were halfway
down the next long turning of the road.
Towns of any size at all were very strange places to Tenar. She had not lived
in them. She had seen the greatest city in Earthsea, Havnor, once, for a
while; and she had sailed into Gont Port with Ged, years ago, but they had
climbed on up the road to the Overfell without pausing in the streets. The
only other town she knew was Valmouth, where her daughter lived, a sleepy,
sunny little harbor town where a ship trading from the Andrades was a great
event, and most of the conversation of the inhabitants concerned dried fish.
She and the child came into the streets of Gont Port when the sun was still
well above the western sea. Therru had walked fifteen miles without complaint
and without being worn out, though certainly she was very tired . Tenar was
tired too, having not slept the night before, and having been much
distressed; and also Ogion's books had been a heavy burden. Halfway down the
road she had put them into the backpack, and the food and clothing into the
woolsack, which was better, but not all that much better. So they came
trudging among outlying houses to the landgate of the city, where the road,
coming between two carved stone dragons, turned into a street. There a man,
the guard of the gate, eyed them. Therru bent her burned face down towards
the shoulder and hid her burned hand under the apron of her dress.
"Will you be going to a house in town, mistress?" the guard asked, peering at
the child .
Tenar did not know what to say. She did not know there were guards at city
gates. She had nothing to pay a toll-keeper or an innkeeper. She did not know
a soul in Gont Port-except, she thought now, the wizard, the one who had come
up to bury Ogion, what was he called? But she did not know what he was
called. She stood there with her mouth open, like Heather.
"Go on, go on," the guard said, bored, and turned away.
She wanted to ask him where she would find the road south across the
headlands, the coast road to Valmouth; but she dared not waken his interest
again, lest he decide she was after all a vagrant or a witch or whatever he
and the stone dragons were supposed to keep out of Gont Port. So they went
on between the dragons-Therru looked up, a little, to see them-and tramped
along on cobblestones, more and more amazed, bewildered, and abashed. It did
not seem to Tenar that anybody or anything in the world had been kept out of
Gont Port. It was all here. Tall houses of stone, wagons, drays, carts,
cattle, donkeys, marketplaces, shops, crowds, people, people-the farther they
went the more people there were. Therru clung to Tenar's hand, sidling,
hiding her face with her hair. Tenar clung to Therru's hand.
She did not see how they could stay here, so the only thing to do was get
started south and go till nightfall-all too soon now-hoping to camp in the
woods. Tenar picked out a broad woman in a broad white apron who was closing
the shutters of a shop, and crossed the street, resolved to ask her for the
road south out of the city. The woman's firm, red face looked pleasant
enough, but as Tenar was getting up her courage to speak to her, Therru
clutched her hard as if trying to hide herself against her, and looking up
she saw coming down the street towards her the man with the leather cap. He
saw her at the same instant. He stopped.
Tenar seized Therru's arm and half dragged, half swung her round. "Come!" she
said, and strode straight on past the man. Once she had put him behind her
she walked faster, going downhill towards the flare and dark of the sunset
water and the docks and quais at the foot of the steep street. Therru ran
with her, gasping as she had gasped after she was burned.
Tall masts rocked against the red and yellow sky. The ship, sails furled, lay
against the stone pier, beyond an oared galley.
Tenar looked back. The man was following them, close behind. He was not
hurrying.
She ran out onto the pier, but after a way Therru stumbled and could not go
on, unable to get her breath. Tenar picked her up, and the child held to her,
hiding her face in Tenar's shoulder. But Tenar could scarcely move, thus
laden. Her legs shook under her. She took a step, and another, and another.
She came to the little wooden bridge they had laid from the pier to the
ship's deck. She laid her hand on its rail.
A sailor on deck, a bald, wiry fellow, looked her over. "What's wrong,
miss's?" he said.
"Is-Is the ship from Havnor?"
"From the King's City, sure.
"Let me aboard!"
"Well, I can't do that," the man said, grinning, but his eyes shifted; he was
looking at the man who had come to stand beside Tenar.
"You don't have to run away," Handy said to her. "I don't mean you any harm.
I don't want to hurt you. You don't understand. I was the one got help for
her, wasn't I? I was really sorry, what happened. I want to help you with
her." He put out his hand as if drawn irresistibly to touch Therru. Tenar
could not move. She had promised Therru that he would never touch her again.
She saw the hand touch the child's bare, flinching arm.
"What do you want with her?" said another voice. Another sailor had taken the
place of the bald one: a young man. Tenar thought he was her son.
Handy was quick to speak. "She's got-she took my kid. My niece. It's mine.
She witched it, she run off with it, see- She could not speak at all. The
words were gone from her again, taken from her. The young sailor was not her
son. His face was thin and stern, with clear eyes. Looking at him, she found
the words: "Let me come aboard. Please!"
The young man held out his hand. She took it, and he brought her across the
gangway onto the deck of the ship.
"Wait there," he said to Handy, and to her, "Come with me."
But her legs would not hold her up. She sank down in a heap on the deck of
the ship from Havnor, dropping the heavy sack but clinging to the child.
"Don't let him take her, oh, don't let them have her, not again, not again,
not again!"
The Dolphin
She would not let go the child, she would not give the child to them. They
were all men aboard the ship. Only after a long time did she begin to be able
to take into her mind what they said, what had been done, what was happening.
When she understood who the young man was, the one she had thought was her
son, it seemed as if she had understood it all along, only she had not been
able to think it. She had not been able to think anything.
He had come back onto the ship from the docks and now stood talking to a
grey-haired man, the ship's master by the look of him, near the gangplank. He
glanced over at Tenar, whom they had let stay crouching with Therru in a
corner of the deck between the railing and a great windlass. The long day's
weariness had won out over Therru's fear; she was fast asleep, close against
Tenar, with her little pack for a pillow and her cloak for a blanket.
Tenar got up slowly, and the young man came to her at once. She straightened
her skirts and tried to smooth her hair back. "I am Tenar of Atuan," she
said. He stood still. She said, "I think you are the king."
He was very young, younger than her son, Spark. He could hardly be twenty
yet. But there was a look to him that was not young at all, something in his
eyes that made her think: He has been through the fire.
"My name is Lebannen of Enlad, my lady," he said, and he was about to bow or
even kneel to her. She caught his hands so that they stood there face to
face. "Not to me, she said, "nor I to you!"
He laughed in surprise, and held her hands while he stared at her frankly.
"How did you know I sought you? Were you coming to me, when that man-?"
"No, no. I was running away-from him-from-from ruffians- I was trying to go
home, that's all."
"To Atuan?"
"Oh, no! To my farm. In Middle Valley. On Gont, here." She laughed too, a
laugh with tears in it. The tears could be wept now, and would be wept. She
let go the king's hands so that she could wipe her eyes.
"Where is it, Middle Valley?" he asked. "South and east, around the headlands
there. Valmouth is the port.
"We'll take you there," he said, with delight in being able to offer it, to
do it.
She smiled and wiped her eyes, nodding acceptance. "A glass of wine. Some
food, some rest," he said, "and a bed for your child." The ship's master,
listening discreetly, gave orders. The bald sailor she remembered from what
seemed a long time ago came forward. He was going to pick up Therru. Tenar
stood between him and the child. She could not let him touch her. "I'll carry
her," she said, her voice strained high.
"There's the stairs there, miss's. I'll do it," said the sailor, and she knew
he was kind, but she could not let him touch Therru.
"Let me," the young man, the king, said, and with a glance at her for
permission, he knelt, gathered up the sleeping child, and carried her to the
hatchway and care-fully down the ladder-stairs. Tenar followed.
He laid her on a bunk in a tiny cabin, awkwardly, tenderly. He tucked the
cloak around her. Tenar let him do so.
In a larger cabin that ran across the stern of the ship, with a long window
looking out over the twilit bay, he asked her to sit at the oaken table. He
took a tray from the sailor boy that brought it, poured out red wine in
goblets of heavy glass, offered her fruit and cakes.
She tasted the wine.
"It's very good, but not the Dragon Year," she said.
He looked at her in unguarded surprise, like any boy.
"From Enlad, not the Andrades," he said meekly.
"It's very fine," she assured him, drinking again. She took a cake. It was
shortbread, very rich, not sweet. The green and amber grapes were sweet and
tart. The vivid tastes of the food and wine were like the ropes that moored
the ship, they moored her to the world, to her mind again.
"I was very frightened," she said by way of apology. "I think I'll be myself
again soon. Yesterday-no, today, this morning-there was a-a spell-" It was
almost impossible to say the word, she stammered at it: "A c-curse-laid on
me. It took my speech, and my wits, I think. And we ran from that, but we ran
right to the man, the man who-" She looked up despairingly at the young man
listening to her. His grave eyes let her say what must be said. "He was one
of the people who crippled the child. He and her parents. They raped her and
beat her and burned her; these things happen, my lord. These things happen to
children. And he keeps following her, to get at her. And-"
She stopped herself, and drank wine, making herself taste its flavor.
"And so from him I ran to you. To the haven." She looked about at the low,
carved beams of the cabin, the polished table, the silver tray, the thin,
quiet face of the young man. His hair was dark and soft, his skin a clear
bronze-red; he was dressed well and plainly, with no chain or ring or outward
mark of authority. But he looked the way a king should look, she thought.
"I'm sorry I let the man go," he said. "But he can be found again. Who was it
laid the spell on you?"
"A wizard." She would not say the name. She did not want to think about all
that. She wanted them all behind her. No retribution, no pursuit. Leave them
to their hatreds, put them behind her, forget.
Lebannen did not press, but he asked, "Will you be safe from these men on
your farm?"
"I think so. If I hadn't been so tired, so confused by the-by the-so confused
in my mind, so that I couldn't think, I wouldn't have been afraid of Handy.
What could he have done? With all the people about, in the street? I
shouldn't have run from him. But all I could feel was her fear. She's so
little, all she can do is fear him. She'll have to learn not to fear him. I
have to teach her that ..." She was wandering. Thoughts came into her head in
Kargish. Had she been talking in Kargish? He would think she was mad, an old
mad woman babbling. She glanced up at him furtively. His dark eyes were not
on her; he gazed at the flame of the glass lamp that hung low over the table,
a little, still, clear flame. His face was too sad for a young man's face.
"You came to find him," she said. "The archmage. Sparrowhawk."
"Ged," he said, looking at her with a faint smile. "You, and he, and I go by
our true names.
"You and I, yes. But he, only to you and me."
He nodded.
"He's in danger from envious men, men of ill will, and he has no-no defense,
now. You know that?"
She could not bring herself to be plainer, but Lebannen said, "He told me
that his power as a mage was gone. Spent in the act that saved me, and all of
us. But it was hard to believe. I wanted not to believe him."'
"I too, But it is so. And so he-" Again she hesitated. "He wants to be alone
until his hurts are healed," she said at last, cautiously.
Lebannen said, "He and I were in the dark land, the dry land, together. We
died together. Together we crossed the mountains there. You can come back
across the mountains. There is a way. He knew it. But the name of the
mountains is Pain. The stones . . . The stones cut, and the cuts are long to
heal."
He looked down at his hands. She thought of Ged's hands, scored and gashed,
clenched on their wounds. Holding the cuts close, closed.
Her own hand closed on the small stone in her pocket, the word she had picked
up on the steep road.
"Why does he hide from me?'" the young man cried in grief. Then, quietly, "I
hoped indeed to see him. But if he doesn't wish it, that's the end of it, of
course." She recognized the courtliness, the civility, the dignity of the
messengers from Havnor, and appreciated it; she knew its worth. But she loved
him for his grief.
"Surely he'll come to you. Only give him time. He was so badly
hurt-everything taken from him- But when he spoke of you, when he said your
name, oh, then I saw him for a moment as he was-as he will be again- All
pride!'"
"Pride?"' Lebannen repeated, as if startled.
"Yes. Of course, pride. Who should be proud, if not he?"
"I always thought of him as- He was so patient," Lebannen said, and then
laughed at the inadequacy of his description.
"Now he has no patience," she said, "and is hard on himself beyond all
reason. There's nothing we can do for him, I think, except let him go his own
way and find himself at the end of his tether, as they say on Gont All at
once she was at the end of her own tether, so weary she felt ill. "I think I
must rest now,"" she said.
He rose at once. "Lady Tenar, you say you fled from one enemy and found
another; but I came seeking a friend, and found another.' " She smiled at his
wit and kindness. What a nice boy he is, she thought.
The ship was all astir when she woke: creaking and groaning of timbers, thud
of running feet overhead, rattle of canvas, sailors' shouts. Therru was hard
to waken and woke dull, perhaps feverish, though she was always so warm that
Tenar found it hard to judge her fevers. Remorseful for having dragged the
fragile child fifteen miles on foot and for all that had happened yesterday,
Tenar tried to cheer her by telling her that they were in a ship, and that
there was a real king on the ship, and that the little room they were in was
the king's own room; that the ship was taking them home, to the farm, and
Aunty Lark would be waiting for them at home, and maybe Sparrowhawk would be
there too. Not even that roused Therru's interest. She was blank, inert, mute.
On her small, thin arm Tenar saw a mark-four fingers, red, like a brand, as
from a bruising grip. But Handy had not gripped her, he had only touched her.
Tenar had told her, had promised her that he would never touch her again. The
promise had been broken. Her word meant nothing. What word meant anything,
against deaf violence?
She bent down and kissed the marks on Therru's arm.
"I wish I'd had time to finish your red dress," she said. "The king would
probably like to see it. But then, I suppose people don't wear their best
clothes on a ship, even kings."
Therru sat on the bunk, her head bent down, and did not answer. Tenar brushed
her hair. It was growing out thick at last, a silky black curtain over the
burned parts of the scalp. "Are you hungry, birdlet? You didn't have any
supper last night. Maybe the king will give us breakfast. He gave me cakes
and grapes last night."
No response.
When Tenar said it was time to leave the room, she obeyed. Up on deck she
stood with her head bent to her shoulder. She did not look up at the white
sails full of the morning wind, nor at the sparkling water, nor back at Gont
Mountain rearing its bulk and majesty of forest, cliff, and peak into the
sky. She did not look up when Lebannen spoke to her.
"Therru," Tenar said softly, kneeling by her, "when a king speaks to you, you
answer.
She was silent.
The expression of Lebannen's face as he looked at her was unreadable. A mask
perhaps, a civil mask for revulsion, shock. But his dark eyes were steady. He
touched the child's arm very lightly, saying, "It must be strange for you, to
wake up in the middle of the sea."
She would eat only a little fruit. When Tenar asked her if she wanted to go
back to the cabin, she nodded. Reluctant, Tenar left her curled up in the
bunk and went back up on deck.
The ship was passing between the Armed Cliffs, towering grim walls that
seemed to lean above the sails. Bowmen on guard in little forts like
mud-swallows' nests high on the cliffs looked down at them on deck, and the
sailors yelled cheerfully up at them. "Way for the king!"' they shouted, and
the reply came down not much louder than the calling of swallows from the
heights, "The king!"
Lebannen stood at the high prow with the ship's master and an elderly, lean,
narrow-eyed man in the grey cloak of a mage of Roke Island. Ged had worn such
a cloak, a clean, fine one, on the day he and she brought the Ring of
ErrethAkbe to the Tower of the Sword; an old one, stained and dirty and
travelworn, had been all his blanket on the cold stone of the Tombs of Atuan,
and on the dirt of the desert mountains when they had crossed those mountains
together. She was thinking of that as the foam flew by the ship's sides and
the high cliffs fell away behind.
When the ship was out past the last reefs and had begun to swing eastward,
the three men came to her. Lebannen said, "My lady, this is the Master
Windkey of Roke Island."
The mage bowed, looking at her with praise in his keen eyes, and curiosity
also; a man who liked to know which way the wind blew, she thought.
"Now I needn"t hope the fair weather will hold, but can count on it,'" she
said to him.
"I'm only cargo on a day like this,'" said the mage. "Besides, with a sailor
like Master Serrathen handling the ship, who needs a weatherworker?"
We are so polite, she thought, all Ladies and Lords and Masters, all bows and
compliments. She glanced at the young king. He was looking at her, smiling
but reserved.
She felt as she had felt in Havnor as a girl: a barbarian, uncouth among
their smoothnesses. But because she was not a girl now, she was not awed, but
only wondered at how men ordered their world into this dance of masks, and
how easily a woman might learn to dance it.
It would take them only the day, they told her, to sail to Valmouth. They
would make port there by late afternoon, with this fair wind in the sails.
Still very weary from the long distress and strain of the day before, she was
content to sit in the seat the bald sailor contrived for her out of a straw
mattress and a piece of sailcloth, and watch the waves and the gulls, and see
the outline of Gont Mountain, blue and dreamy in the noon light, changing as
they skirted its steep shores only a mile or two out from land. She brought
Therru up to be in the sunshine, and the child lay beside her, watching and
dozing.
A sailor, a very dark man, toothless, came on bare feet with soles like
hooves and hideously gnarled toes, and put something down on the canvas near
Therru. "For the little girl,"' he said hoarsely, and went off at once,
though not far off. He looked around hopefully now and then from his work to
see if she liked his gift and then pretended he had not looked around. Therru
would not touch the little cloth-wrapped packet. Tenar had to open it. It was
an exquisite carving of a dolphin, in bone or ivory, the length of her thumb.
"It can live in your grass bag," Tenar said, "with the others, the bone
people."
At that Therru came to life enough to fetch out her grass bag and put the
dolphin in it. But Tenar had to go thank the humble giver. Therru would not
look at him or speak. After a while she asked to go back to the cabin, and
Tenar left her there with the bone person, the bone animal, and the dolphin
for company.
It's so easy, she thought with rage, it's so easy for Handy
to take the sunlight from her, take the ship and the king and her childhood
from her, and it's so hard to give them back! A year I've spent trying to
give them back to her, and with one touch he takes them and throws them away.
And what good does it do him-what's his prize, his power? Is power that-an
emptiness?
She joined the king and the mage at the ship's railing. The sun was well to
the west now, and the ship drove through a glory of light that made her think
of her dream of flying with the dragons.
"Lady Tenar," the king said, "I give you no message for our friend. It seems
to me that to do so is to lay a burden on you, and also to encroach upon his
freedom; and I don't want to do either. I am to be crowned within the month.
If it were he that held the crown, my reign would begin as my heart desires.
But whether he's there or not, he brought me to my kingdom. He made me king.
I will not forget it."
"I know you will not forget it," she said gently. He was so intense, so
serious, armored in the formality of his rank and yet vulnerable in his
honesty, the purity of his will. Her heart yearned to him. He thought he had
learned pain, but he would learn it again and again, all his life, and forget
And therefore he would not, like Handy, do the easy thing to do.
"I'll bear a message willingly," she said. "It's no burden. Whether he'd hear
it is up to him."
The Master Windkey grinned. "It always was,"' he said. "Whatever he did was
up to him."
"You've known him a long time?"
"Even longer than you, my lady. Taught him,'" said the mage. "What I could. .
. . He came to the School on Roke, you know, as a boy, with a letter from
Ogion telling us that he had great power. But the first time I had him out in
a boat, to learn how to speak to the wind, you know, he raised up a
waterspout. I saw then what we were in for. I thought, Either he'll be
drowned before he's sixteen, or he'll be archmage before he's forty. . . . Or
I like to think I thought it."
"Is he still archmage?"' Tenar asked. The question seemed baldly ignorant,
and when it was greeted by a silence, she feared it had been worse than
ignorant.
The mage said finally, "There is now no Archmage of Roke. " His tone was
exceedingly cautious and precise.
She dared not ask what he meant.
"I think," said the king, "that the Healer of the Rune of Peace may be part
of any council of this realm; don't you think so, sir?"
After another pause and evidently with a little struggle, the mage said,
"Certainly."'
The king waited, but he said no more.
Lebannen looked out at the bright water and spoke as if he began a tale:
"When he and I came to Roke from the farthest west, borne by the dragon He
paused, and the dragon's name spoke itself in Tenar's mind, Kalessin, like a
struck gong.
"The dragon left me there, but bore him away. The keeper of the door of the
House of Roke said then, 'He has done with doing. He goes home.' And before
that-on the beach of Selid or-he bade me leave his staff, saying he was no
mage now. So the Masters of Roke took counsel to choose a new archmage.
"They took me among them, that I might learn what it might be well for a king
to know about the Council of the Wise. And also I was one of them to replace
one of their number: Thorion, the Summoner, whose art was turned against him
by that great evil which my lord Sparrowhawk found and ended. When we were
there, in the dry land, between the wall and the mountains, I saw Thorion. My
lord spoke to him, telling him the way back to life across the wall. But he
did not take it. He did not come back.""
The young man's strong, fine hands held hard to the ship's rail. He still
gazed at the sea as he spoke. He was silent for a minute and then took up his
story.
"So I made out the number, nine, who meet to choose the new archmage.
"They are . . . they are wise men," he said, with a glance at Tenar. "Not
only learned in their art, but knowledgeable men. They use their differences,
as I had seen before, to make their decision strong. But this time . . .
"The fact is," said the master windkey, seeing Lebannen unwilling to seem to
criticize the Masters of Roke, "we were all difference and no decision. We
could come to no agreement. Because the archmage wasn't dead-was alive, you
see, and yet no mage-and yet still a dragonlord, it seemed. . . . And because
our Changer was still shaken from the turning of his own art on him, and
believed that the Summoner would return from death, and begged us to wait for
him. . . . And because the Master Patterner would not speak at all. He is a
Karg, my lady, like yourself; did you know that? He came to us from
Karego-At. " " His keen eyes watched her: which way does the wind blow? "So
because of all that, we found ourselves at a loss. When the Doorkeeper asked
for the names of those from whom we would choose, not a name was spoken.
Everybody looked at everybody else
"I looked at the ground," Lebannen said.
"So at last we looked to the one who knows the names:
the Master Namer. And he was watching the Patterner, who hadn't said a word,
but sat there among his trees like a stump. It's in the Grove we meet, you
know, among those trees whose roots are deeper than the islands. It was late
in the evening by then. Sometimes there's a light among those trees, but not
that night. It was dark, no starlight, a cloudy sky above the leaves, And the
Patterner stood up and spoke then-but in his own language, not in the Old
Speech, nor in Hardic, but in Kargish. Few of us knew it or even knew what
tongue it was, and we didn't know what to think. But the Namer told us what
the Patterner had said. He said:
A woman on Gont. "
He stopped. He was no longer looking at her. After a bit she said, "Nothing
more?"
"Not a word more. When we pressed him, he stared at us and couldn't answer;
for he'd been in the vision, you see-he'd been seeing the shape of things,
the pattern; and it's little of that can ever be put in words, and less into
ideas. He knew no more what to think of what he'd said than the rest of us.
But it was all we had."
The Masters of Roke were teachers, after all, and the Windkey was a very good
teacher; he couldn't help but make his story clear. Clearer perhaps than he
wanted. He glanced once again at Tenar, and away.
"So, you see, it seemed we should come to Gont. But for what? Seeking whom?
'A woman'-not much to go on! Evidently this woman is to guide us, show us the
way, somehow, to our archmage. And at once, as you may think, my lady, you
were spoken of-for what other woman on Gont had we ever heard of? It is no
great island, but yours is a great fame. Then one of us said, 'She would lead
us to Ogion.' But we all knew that Ogion had long ago refused to be archmage,
and surely would not accept now that he was old and ill. And indeed Ogion was
dying as we spoke, I think. Then another said, 'But she'd lead us also to
Sparrowhawk!' And then we were truly in the dark."
"Truly," Lebannen said. "For it began to rain, there among the trees." He
smiled. "I had thought I'd never hear rain fall again, It was a great joy to
me.
"Nine of us wet," said the Windkey, "and one of us happy."
Tenar laughed. She could not help but like the man. If he was so wary of her,
it behooved her to be wary of him; but to Lebannen, and in Lebannen's
presence, only candor would do.
"Your 'woman on Gont' can't be me, then, for I will not lead you to
Sparrowhawk."
"It was my opinion," the mage said with apparent and perhaps real candor of
his own, "that it couldn't be you, my lady. For one thing, he would have said
your name, surely, in the vision. Very few are those who bear their true
names openly! But I am charged by the Council of Roke to ask you if you know
of any woman on this isle who might be the one we seek-sister or mother to a
man of power, or even his teacher; for there are witches very wise in their
way. Maybe Ogion knew such a woman? They say he knew every soul on this
island, for all he lived alone and wandered in the wilderness. I wish he were
alive to aid us now!
She had thought already of the fisherwoman of Ogion's story. But that woman
had been old when Ogion knew her, years ago, and must be dead by now. Though
dragons, she thought, lived very long lives, it was said.
She said nothing for a while, and then only, "I know no one of that sort."
She could feel the mage's controlled impatience with her. What's she holding
out for? What is it she wants? he was thinking, no doubt. And she wondered
why it was she could not tell him. His deafness silenced her. She could not
even tell him he was deaf.
"So," she said at last, "there is no archmage of Earthsea. But there is a
king."'
"In whom our hope and trust are well founded," the mage said with a warmth
that became him well. Lebannen, watching and listening, smiled.
"In these past years," Tenar said, hesitant, "there have been many troubles,
many miseries. My-the little girl- Such things have been all too common. And
I have heard men and women of power speak of the waning, or the changing, of
their power.
"That one whom the archmage and my lord defeated in the dry land, that Cob,
caused untold harm and ruin. We shall be repairing our art, healing our
wizards and our wizardry, for a long time yet," the mage said, decisively.
"I wonder if there might be more to be done than repairing and healing," she
said, "though that too, of course- But I wonder, could it be that . . . that
one such as Cob could have such power because things were already altering .
. . and that a change, a great change, has been taking place, has taken
place? And that it's because of that change that we have a king again in
Earthsea-perhaps a king rather than an archmage?"'
The Windkey looked at her as if he saw a very distant storm cloud on the
uttermost horizon. He even raised his right hand in the hint, the first
sketch, of a wind binding spell, and then lowered it again. He smiled. "Don't
be afraid, my lady," he said. "Roke, and the Art Magic, will endure. Our
treasure is well guarded!"
"Tell Kalessin that,"' she said, suddenly unable to endure the utter
unconsciousness of his disrespect. It made him stare, of course. He heard the
dragon's name. But it did not
make him hear her. How could he, who had never listened to a woman since his
mother sang him his last cradle song, hear her?
"Indeed," said Lebannen, "Kalessin came to Roke, which is said to be defended
utterly from dragons; and not through any spell of my lord's, for he had no
magery then. . . . But I don't think, Master Windkey, that Lady Tenar was
afraid for herself."'
The mage made an earnest effort to amend his offense. "I'm sorry, my lady,"'
he said, "I spoke as to an ordinary woman.
She almost laughed. She could have shaken him. She said only, indifferently,
"My fears are ordinary fears." It was no use; he could not hear her.
But the young king was silent, listening.
A sailor boy up in the dizzy, swaying world of the masts and sails and
rigging overhead called out clear and sweet, "Town there round the point!'"
And in a minute those down on deck saw the little huddle of slate roofs, the
spires of blue smoke, a few glass windows catching the westering sun, and the
docks and piers of Valmouth on its bay of satiny blue water.
"Shall I take her in or will you talk her in, my lord?"' asked the calm
ship's-master, and the Windkey replied, "Sail her in, master. I don't want to
have to deal with all that flotsam!"-waving his hand at the dozens of fishing
craft that littered the bay. So the king's ship, like a swan among ducklings,
came tacking slowly in, hailed by every boat she passed .
Tenar looked along the docks, but there was no other seagoing vessel.
"I have a sailor son,'" she said to Lebannen. "I thought his ship might be
in."'
"What is his ship?'
"He was third mate aboard the Gull of Eskel, but that was more than two years
ago. He may have changed ships. He's a restless man."' She smiled. "When I
first saw you, I thought you were my son. You're nothing alike, only in being
tall, and thin, and young. And I was confused, frightened. . . . Ordinary
fears."
The mage had gone up on the master's station in the prow, and she and
Lebannen stood alone.
"There is too much ordinary fear," he said.
It was her only chance to speak to him alone, and the words came out hurried
and uncertain-' '1 wanted to say- but there was no use-but couldn't it be
that there's a woman on Gont, I don't know who, I have no idea, but it could
be that there is, or will be, or may be, a woman, and that they seek-that
they need-her. Is it impossible?"
He listened. He was not deaf. But he frowned, intent, as if trying to
understand a foreign language. And he said only, under his breath, "It may
be."
A fisherwoman in her tiny dinghy bawled up, "Where from?'" and the boy in the
rigging called back like a crowing cock, "From the King's City!"
"What is this ship's name?" Tenar asked. "My son will ask what ship I sailed
on.
"Dolphin, " Lebannen answered, smiling at her. My son, my king, my dear boy,
she thought. How I'd like to keep you nearby!
"I must go get my little one,'' " she said.
"How will you get home?"
"Afoot. It's only a few miles up the valley." She pointed past the town,
inland, where Middle Valley lay broad and sunlit between two arms of the
mountain, like a lap. "The village is on the river, and my farm's a half mile
from the
village. It's a pretty corner of your kingdom."
"But will you be safe?"
"Oh, yes. I'll spend tonight with my daughter here in Valmouth, And in the
village they're all to be depended on. I won't be alone."
Their eyes met for a moment, but neither spoke the name they both thought.
"Will they be coming again, from Roke?" she asked. "Looking for the 'woman on
Gont"-or for him?"'
"Not for him. That, if they propose again, I will forbid," Lebannen said, not
realizing how much he told her in those three words. "But as for their search
for a new archmage, or for the woman of the Patterner's s vision, yes, that
may bring them here. And perhaps to you.
"They'll be welcome at Oak Farm," she said. "Though not as welcome as you
would be."
"I will come when I can," he said, a little sternly; and a little wistfully,
"if I can."
Home
Most of the people of Valmouth came down to the docks to see the ship from
Havnor, when they heard that the king was aboard, the new king, the young
king that the new songs were about. They didn't know the new songs yet, but
they knew the old ones, and old Relli came with his harp and sang a piece of
the Deed of Morred, for a king of Earthsea would be the heir of Morred for
certain. Presently the king himself came on deck, as young and tall and
handsome as could be, and with him a mage of Roke, and a woman and a little
girl in old cloaks not much better than beggars, but he treated them as if
they were a queen and a princess, so maybe that's what they were. "Maybe it's
his mother," said Shinny, trying to see over the heads of the men in front of
her, and then her friend Apple clutched her arm and said in a kind of
whispered shriek, "It is-it's mother!"
"Whose mother?" said Shinny, and Apple said, "Mine. And that's Therru." But
she did not push forward in the crowd, even when an officer of the ship came
ashore to invite old Relli aboard to play for the king. She waited with the
others. She saw the king receive the notables of Val-mouth, and heard Relli
sing for him. She watched him bid his guests farewell, for the ship was going
to stand out to sea again, people said, before night fell, and be on her way
home to Havnor, The last to come across the gangplank were Therru and Tenar.
To each the king gave the formal embrace, laying cheek to cheek, kneeling tO
embrace Therru. "Ah!" said the crowd on the dock. The sun was setting in a
mist of gold, laying a great gold track across the bay, as the two came down
the railed gangplank. Tenar lugged a heavy pack and bag; Therru's face was
bent down and hidden by her hair. The gangplank was run in, and the sailors
leapt to the rigging, and the officers shouted, and the ship Dolphin turned
on her way. Then Apple made her way through the crowd at last.
"Hello, mother," she said, and Tenar said, "Hello, daughter." They kissed,
and Apple picked up Therru and said, "How you've grown! You're twice the girl
you were. Come on, come on home with me.
But Apple was a little shy with her mother, that evening, in the pleasant
house of her young merchant husband. She gazed at her several times with a
thoughtful, almost a wary look. "It never meant a thing to me, you know,
mother," she said at the door of Tenar's bedroom-"all that-the Rune of
peace-and you bringing the Ring to Havnor. It was just like one of the songs.
A thousand years ago! But it really was you, wasn't it?"
"It was a girl from Atuan," Tenar said. "A thousand years ago. I think I
could sleep for a thousand years, just now.
"Go to bed, then." Apple turned away, then turned back, lamp in hand.
"King-kisser," she said.
"Get along with you," said Tenar.
Apple and her husband kept Tenar a couple of days, but after that she was
determined tO go to the farm. So Apple walked with her and Therru up along
the placid, silvery Kaheda. Summer was turning to autumn. The sun was still
hot, but the wind was cool. The foliage of trees had a weary, dusty look to
it, and the fields were cut or in harvest.
Apple spoke of how much stronger Therru was, and how sturdily she walked now.
"I wish you'd seen her at Re Albi," Tenar said, "before-'" and stopped. She
had decided not to worry her daughter with all that.
"What did happen? " " Apple asked, so clearly resolved to know that Tenar
gave in and answered in a low voice, "One of them."
Therru was a few yards ahead of them, long-legged in her outgrown dress,
hunting blackberries in the hedgerows as she walked.
"Her father?" Apple asked, sickened at the thought.
"Lark said the one that seems to be the father called himself Hake. This
one's younger. He's the one that came to Lark to tell her. He's called Handy.
He was.., hanging around at Re Albi. And then by ill luck we ran into him in
Gont Port. But the king sent him off. And now I'm here and he's there, and
all that's done with.""
"But Therru was frightened," Apple said, a bit grimly. Tenar nodded.
"But why did you go to Gont Port?"
"Oh, well, this man Handy was working for a man
. . . a wizard at the lord's house in Re Albi, who took a dislike to me
She tried to think of the wizard's use-name and could not; all she could
think of was Tuaho, a Kargish word for a kind of tree, she could not remember
what tree.
"So?"'
"Well, so, it seemed better just to come on home.'"
"But what did this wizard dislike you for?"'
"For being a woman, mostly."
" Bah," said Apple. "Old cheese rind."
"Young cheese rind, in this case."
"Worse yet. Well, nobody around here that I know of has seen the parents,
if that's the word for "em. But if they're still hanging about, I don't like
your being alone in the farmhouse.'"
It is pleasant to be mothered by a daughter, and to behave as a daughter to
one's daughter. Tenar said impatiently, "I'll be perfectly all right!"
"You could at least get a dog."
"I've thought of that. Somebody in the village might have a pup. We'll
ask Lark when we stop by there."
"Not a puppy, mother. A dog."
"But a young one-one Therru could play with," she pleaded.
"A nice puppy that will come and kiss the burglars," said Apple, stepping
along buxom and grey-eyed, laughing at her mother.
They came to the village about midday. Lark welcomed Tenar and Therru
with a festivity of embraces, kisses, questions, and things to eat. Lark's
quiet husband and other villagers stopped by to greet Tenar. She felt the
happiness of homecoming.
Lark and the two youngest of her seven children, a boy and a girl,
accompanied them out to the farm. The children had known Therru since Lark
first brought her home, of course, and were used to her, though two months'
separation made them shy at first. With them, even with Lark, she remained
withdrawn, passive, as in the bad old days.
"She's worn out, confused by all this traveling. She'll get over it.
She's come along wonderfully," Tenar said to Lark, but Apple would not let
her get out of it so easily. "One of them turned up and terrified her and
mother both,'" said Apple. And little by little, between them, the daughter
and the friend got the story out of Tenar that afternoon, as they opened up
the cold, stuffy, dusty house, put it to rights, aired the bedding, shook
their heads over sprouted onions, laid in a bit of food in the pantry, and
set a large kettle of soup on for supper. What they got came a word at a
time. Tenar could not seem to tell them what the wizard had done; a spell,
she said vaguely, or maybe it was that he had sent Handy after her. But when
she came to talk about the king, the words came tumbling out.
"And then there he was-the king!-like a sword blade- And Handy shrinking
and shrivelling back from him- And I thought he was Spark! I did, I really
did for a moment, I was so-so beside myself-"'
"Well," said Apple, "that's all right, because Shinny thought you were
his mother. When we were on the docks watching you come sailing in in your
glory. She kissed him, you know, Aunty Lark. Kissed the king-just like that.
I thought next thing she'd kiss that mage. But she didn't."
"I should think not, what an idea. What mage?" said Lark, with her head
in a cupboard. "Where"s your flour bin, Goha?'"
"Your hand's on it. A Roke mage, come looking for a new archmage."
"Here?"
"Why not?"' said Apple. "The last one was from Gont, wasn't he? But they
didn't spend much time looking. They sailed straight back to Havnor, once
they'd got rid of mother."
"How you do talk."
"He was looking for a woman, he said,'" Tenar told them. "'A woman on
Gont.' But he didn't seem too happy about it."
"A wizard looking for a woman? Well, that's something new,"' said Lark.
"I'd have thought this'd be weevilly by now, but it's perfectly good. I'll
bake up a bannock or two, shall I? Where's the oil?'"
"I'll need to draw some from the crock in the cool-room. Oh, Shandy!
There you are! How are you? How's Clear-brook? How's everything been? Did you
sell the ram lambs?"
They sat down nine to supper. In the soft yellow light of the evening in the
stone-floored kitchen, at the long farm table, Therru began to lift her head
a little, and spoke a few times to the other children; but there was still a
cowering in her, and as it grew darker outside she sat so that her seeing eye
could watch the window.
Not until Lark and her children had gone home in the twilight, and Apple
was singing Therru to sleep, and she was washing up the dishes with Shandy,
did Tenar ask about Ged. Somehow she had not wanted to while Lark and Apple
were listening; there would have been so many explanations. She had forgotten
to mention his being at Re Albi at all. And she did not want to talk about Re
Albi any more. Her mind seemed to darken when she tried to think of it.
"Did a man come here last month from me-to help out with the work?"
"Oh, I clean forgot!'" cried Shandy. "Hawk, you mean- him with the scars
on his face?"
"Yes,'" Tenar said. "Hawk."
"Oh, aye, well, he'll be away up on Hot Springs Mountain, above Lissu, up
there with the sheep, with Serry's sheep, I believe. He come here and says
how you sent him, and there wasn't a lick o' work for him here, you know, with
. Clearbrook and me looking after the sheep and I been dairying and old
Tiff and Sis helping me out when needed, and I racked my brains, but
Clearbrook he says, 'Go ask Serry's man, Farmer Serry's overseer up by
Kahedanan, do they need herders in the high pastures,' he said, and that Hawk
went off and did that, and got took on, and was off next day. 'Go ask Serry's
man,' Clearbrook told him, and that's what he done, and got took right on. So
he'll be back down with the flocks come fall, no doubt. Up there on the Long
Fells above Lissu, in the high pastures. I think maybe it was goats they
wanted him for. Nice-spoken fellow. Sheep or goats, I don't remember which. I
hope it's all right with you that we didn't keep him on here, Goha, but it's
the truth there wasn't a lick o' work for him what with me and Clearbrook and
old Tiff, and Sis got the flax in. And he said he'd been a goatherd over
there where he come from, away round the mountain, some place above Armouth
he said, though he said he'd never herded sheep. Maybe it'll be goats they've
got him with up there."
"Maybe," said Tenar. She was much relieved and much disappointed. She had
wanted to know him safe and well, but she had wanted also to find him here.
But it was enough, she told herself, simply to be home- and maybe better
that he was not here, that none of all that was here, all the griefs and
dreams and wizardries and terrors of Re Albi left behind, for good. She was
here, now, and this was home, these stone floors and walls, these smallpaned
windows, outside which the oaks stood dark in starlight, these quiet, orderly
rooms. She lay awake awhile that night. Her daughter slept in the next room,
the children's room, with Therru, and Tenar lay in her own bed, her husband's
bed, alone.
She slept. She woke, remembering no dream.
After a few days at the farm she scarcely gave a thought to the summer passed
on the Overfell. It was long ago and far away. Despite Shandy's insistence
on there not being a lick o' work to be done about the farm, she found plenty
that needed doing: all that had been left undone over the summer and all that
had to be done in the season of harvest in the fields and dairy. She worked
from daybreak till nightfall, and if by chance she had an hour to sit down,
she spun, or sewed for Therru. The red dress was finished at last, and a
pretty dress it was, with a white apron for fancy wear and an orangey-brown
one for everyday. "Now, then, you look beautiful!"" said Tenar in her
seamstress's pride, when Therru first tried it on.
Therru turned her face away.
"You are beautiful," Tenar said in a different tone. "Listen to me,
Therru. Come here. You have scars, ugly scars, because an ugly, evil thing
was done to you. People see the scars. But they see you, too, and you aren't
the scars. You aren't ugly. You aren't evil. You are Therru, and beautiful.
You are Therru who can work, and walk, and run, and dance, beautifully, in a
red dress."
The child listened, the soft, unhurt side of her face as expressionless
as the rigid, scar-masked side.
She looked down at Tenar's hands, and presently touched them with her
small fingers. "It is a beautiful dress,'" she said in her faint, hoarse
voice.
When Tenar was alone, folding up the scraps of red material, tears came
stinging into her eyes. She felt rebuked. She had done right to make the
dress, and she had spoken the truth to the child. But it was not enough, the
right and the truth. There was a gap, a void, a gulf, on beyond the right and
the truth. Love, her love for Therru and Therru's for her, made a bridge
across that gap, a bridge of spider web, but love did not fill or close it.
Nothing did that. And the child knew it better than she.
The day of the equinox came, a bright sun of autumn burning through the
mist. The first bronze was in the leaves of the oaks. As she scrubbed cream
pans in the dairy with the window and door wide open to the sweet air, Tenar
thought that her young king was being crowned this day in Havnor. The lords
and ladies would walk in their clothes of blue and green and crimson, but he
would wear white, she thought. He would climb up the steps to the Tower of
the Sword, the steps she and Ged had climbed. The crown of Morred would be
placed on his head. He would turn as the trumpets sounded and seat himself on
the throne that had been empty so many years, and look at his kingdom with
those dark eyes that knew what pain was, what fear was. "Rule well, rule
long," she thought, "poor boy!'" And she thought, "It should have been Ged
there putting the crown on his head. He should have gone.
But Ged was herding the rich man's sheep, or maybe goats, up in the high
pastures. It was a fair, dry, golden autumn, and they would not be bringing
the flocks down till the snow fell up there on the heights.
When she went into the village, Tenar made a point of going by Ivy's
cottage at the end of Mill Lane. Getting to know Moss at Re Albi had made her
wish to know Ivy better, if she could once get past the witch's suspicion and
jealousy. She missed Moss, even though she had Lark here; she had learned
from her and had come to love her, and Moss had given both her and Therru
something they needed. She hoped to find a replacement of that here. But Ivy,
though a great deal cleaner and more reliable than Moss, had no intention of
giving up her dislike of Tenar. She treated her overtures of friendship with
the contempt that, Tenar admitted, they perhaps deserved. "You go your way,
I go mine," the witch told her in everything but words; and Tenar obeyed,
though she continued to treat Ivy with marked respect when they met. She had,
she thought, slighted her too often and too long, and owed her reparation.
Evidently agreeing, the witch accepted her due with unbending ire.
In mid-autumn the sorcerer Beech came up the valley, called by a rich
farmer to treat his gout. He stayed on awhile in the Middle Valley villages
as he usually did, and passed one afternoon at Oak Farm, checking up on
Therru and talking with Tenar. He wanted to know anything she would tell him
of Ogion's last days. He was the pupil of a pupil of Ogion's and a devout
admirer of the mage of Gont. Tenar found it was not so hard to talk about
Ogion as about other people of Re Albi, and told him all she could. When she
had done he asked a little cautiously, "And the archmage-did he come?"
"Yes," Tenar said.
Beech, a smooth-skinned, mild-looking man in his forties, tending a
little to fat, with dark half-circles under his eyes that belied the
blandness of his face, glanced at her, and asked nothing.
"He came after Ogion's death. And left," she said. And presently, "He's
not archmage now. You knew that?"
Beech nodded.
"Is there any word of their choosing a new archmage?" The sorcerer shook
his head. "There was a ship in from the Enlades not long ago, but no word
from her crew of anything but the coronation. They were full of that! And it
sounds as if all auspices and events were fortunate. If the goodwill of mages
is valuable, then this young king of ours is a rich man. . . . And an active
one, it seems. There's an order come overland from Gont Port just before I
left Valmouth, for the nobles and merchants and the mayor and his council to
meet together and see to it that the bailiffs of the district be worthy and
accountable men, for they're the king's officers now, and are to do his will
and enact his law. Well, you can imagine how Lord Heno greeted that!" Heno
was a notable patron of pirates, who had long kept most of the bailiffs and
sea-sheriffs of South Gont in his pocket. "But there were men willing to face
up to Heno, with the king standing behind them. They dismissed the old
lot then and there, and named fifteen new bailiffs, decent men, paid out of
the mayor's funds. Heno stormed off swearing destruction. It's a new day! Not
all at once, of course, but it's coming. I wish Master Ogion had lived to see
it."
"He did," Tenar said. "As he was dying, he smiled, and he said, 'All changed
. . . . "
Beech took this in his sober way, nodding slowly. "All changed," he
repeated .
After a while he said, "The little one's doing very well."
"Well enough. . . . Sometimes I think not well enough."
"Mistress Goha," said the sorcerer, "if I or any sorcerer or witch or I
daresay wizard had kept her, and used all the power of healing of the Art
Magic for her all these months since she was injured, she wouldn't be better
off. Maybe not as well as she is. You have done all that can be done,
mistress. You have done a wonder."
She was touched by his earnest praise, and yet it made her sad; and she
told him why. "It isn't enough," she said. "I can't heal her. She is . . .
What is she to do? What will become of her?" She ran off the thread she had
been spinning onto the spindle-shank, and said, "I am afraid."
"For her," Beech said, half querying.
"Afraid because her fear draws to it, to her, the cause of her fear.
Afraid because- "
But she could not find the words for it.
"If she lives in fear, she will do harm," she said at last. "I'm afraid
of that."
The sorcerer pondered. "I've thought," " he said at last in his
diffident way, that maybe, if she has the gift, as I think she does, she
might be trained a bit in the Art. And, as a witch, her . . . appearance
wouldn't be so much against her-possibly." He cleared his throat. "There are
witches who do very creditable work," he said.
Tenar ran a little of the thread she had spun between her fingers,
testing it for evenness and strength. "Ogion told me to teach her. 'Teach her
all,' he said, and then, 'Not Roke.' I don't know what he meant."
Beech had no difficulty with it. "He meant that the learning of Roke-the
High Arts-wouldn't be suitable for a girl," he explained. "Let alone one so
handicapped. But if he said to teach her all but that lore, it would seem
that he too saw her way might well be the witches' way." He pondered again,
more cheerfully, having got the weight of Ogion's opinion on his side. "In a
year or two, when she's quite strong, and grown a bit more, you might think
of asking Ivy to begin teaching her a bit. Not too much, of course, even of
that kind of thing, till she has her true name.
Tenar felt a strong, immediate resistance to the suggestion. She said
nothing, but Beech was a sensitive man. "Ivy's dour," he said. "But what she
knows, she does honestly. Which can't be said of all witches. Weak as women's
magic, you know, and wicked as women's magic! But I've known witches with
real healing power. Healing befits a woman. It comes natural to her. And the
child might be drawn to that-having been so hurt herself."
His kindness was, Tenar thought, innocent.
She thanked him, saying that she would think carefully about what he had
said. And indeed she did so.
Before the month was out, the villages of Middle Valley had met at the Round
Barn of Sodeva to appoint their own bailiffs and officers of the peace and to
levy a tax upon themselves to pay the bailiffs' wages with. Such were the
king's orders, brought to the mayors and elders of the villages, and readily
obeyed, for there were as many sturdy beggars and thieves on the roads as
ever, and the villagers and farmers were eager to have order and safety. Some
ugly rumors went about, such as that Lord Heno had formed a Council of
Scoundrels and was enlisting all the blackguards in the countryside to go
about in gangs breaking the heads of the king's bailies; but most people
said, "Just let 'em try! " " and went home telling each other that now an
honest man could sleep safe abed at night, and what went wrong the king was
setting right, though the taxes were beyond all reason and they'd all be poor
men forever trying to pay them.
Tenar was glad to hear of all this from Lark, but did not pay it much
heed. She was working very hard; and since she had got home she had, almost
without being aware of it, resolved not to let the thought of Handy or any
such ruffian rule her life or Therru"s. She could not keep the child with her
every moment, renewing her terrors, forever reminding her of what she could
not remember and live. The child must be free and know herself to be free, to
grow in grace.
She had gradually lost the shrinking, fearful manner, and by now went all
about the farm and the byways and even into the village by herself. Tenar
said no word of caution to her, even when she had to prevent herself from
doing so. Therm was safe on the farm, safe in the village, no one was going
to hurt her: that must be taken as unquestionable. And indeed Tenar did not
often question it. With herself and Shandy and Clearbrook around the place,
and Sis and Tiff down in the lower house, and Lark's family all over the
village, in the sweet autumn of the Middle Valley, what harm was going to
come to the child?
She'd get a dog, too, when she heard of one she wanted, one of the big
grey Gontish sheep-guards, with their wise, curly heads.
Now and then she thought, as she had at Re Albi, "I must be teaching the
child! Ogion said so." But somehow nothing seemed to get taught to her but
farm work, and stories, in the evening, as the nights drew in and they began
to sit by the kitchen fire after supper before they went to bed. Maybe Beech
was right, and Therru should be sent to a witch to learn what witches knew.
It was better than apprenticing her to a weaver, as Tenar had thought of
doing. But not all that much better. And she was still not very big; and was
very ignorant for her age, for she had been taught nothing before she came to
Oak Farm. She had been like a little animal, barely knowing human speech, and
no human skills. She learned quickly and was twice as obedient and diligent
as Lark's unruly girls and laughing, lazy boys. She could clean and serve and
spin, cook a little, sew a little, look after poultry, fetch the cows, and do
excellent work in the dairy. A proper farm-lassie, old Tiff called her,
fawning a bit. Tenar had also seen him make the sign to avert evil,
surreptitiously, when Therru passed him. Like most people, Tiff believed that
you are what happens to you. The rich and strong must have virtue; one to
whom evil has been done must be bad, and may rightly be punished.
In which case it would not help much if Therru became the properest
farm-lassie in Gont. Not even prosperity would diminish the visible brand of
what had been done to her. So Beech had thought of her being a witch,
accepting, making use, of the brand. Was that what Ogion had meant, when he
said "Not Roke" - when he said "They will fear her"? Was that all?
One day when a managed chance brought them together in the village
street, Tenar said to Ivy, "There's a question I want to ask you, Mistress
Ivy. A matter of your profession. "
The witch eyed her. She had a scathing eye.
"My profession, is it?"
Tenar nodded, steady.
"Come on, then," Ivy said with a shrug, leading off down Mill Lane to her
little house.
It was not a den of infamy and chickens, like Moss's house, but it was a
witch-house, the beams hung thick with dried and drying herbs, the fire
banked under grey ash with one tiny coal winking like a red eye, a lithe,
fat, black cat with one white mustache sleeping up on a shelf, and everywhere
a profusion of little boxes, pots, ewers, trays, and stoppered bottles, all
aromatic, pungent or sweet or strange.
"What can I do for you, Mistress Goha?" Ivy asked, very dry, when they
were inside.
"Tell me, if you will, if you think my ward, Therru, has any gift for
your art-any power in her."
"She? Of course!" said the witch.
Tenar was a bit floored by the prompt and contemptuous answer. "Well,"'
she said. "Beech seemed to think so."
"A blind bat in a cave could see it," said Ivy. "Is that all?"
"No. I want your advice. When I've asked my question, you can tell me the
price of the answer. Fair?"
"Fair."
"Should I prentice Therru for a witch, when she's a bit older?"'
Ivy was silent for a minute, deciding on her fee, Tenar thought. Instead,
she answered the question. "I would not take her," " she said.
"Why?"
"I'd be afraid to,'" the witch answered, with a sudden fierce stare at
Tenar.
"Afraid? Of what?"
"Of her! What is she?'"
"A child. An ill-used child!"
"That's not all she is."
Dark anger came into Tenar and she said, "Must a prentice witch be a
virgin, then?"
Ivy stared. She said after a moment, "I didn't mean that."
"What did you mean?'"
"I mean I don't know what she is. I mean when she looks at me with that
one eye seeing and one eye blind I don't know what she sees. I see you go
about with her like she was any child, and I think, What are they? What's the
strength of that woman, for she's not a fool, to hold a fire by the hand, to
spin thread with the whirlwind? They say, mistress, that you lived as a child
yourself with the Old Ones, the Dark Ones, the Ones Underfoot, and that you
were queen and servant of those powers. Maybe that's why you're not afraid of
this one. What power she is, I don't know, I don't say. But it's beyond my
teaching, I know that-or Beech's, or any witch or wizard I ever knew! I'll
give you my advice, mistress, free and feeless. It's this: Beware. Beware
her, the day she finds her strength! That's all."
"I thank you, Mistress Ivy," Tenar said with all the formality of the
Priestess of the Tombs of Atuan, and went out of the warm room into the thin,
biting wind of the end of autumn.
She was still angry. Nobody would help her, she thought. She knew the job was
beyond her, they didn't have to tell her that-but none of them would help
her. Ogion had died, and old Moss ranted, and Ivy warned, and Beech kept
clear, and Ged-the one who might really have helped- Ged ran away. Ran off
like a whipped dog, and never sent sign or word to her, never gave a thought
to her or Therru, but only to his own precious shame. That was his child, his
nurseling. That was all he cared about. He had never cared or thought about
her, only about power-her power, his power, how he could use it, how he could
make more power of it. Putting the broken Ring together, making the Rune,
putting a king on the throne. And when his power was gone, still it was all
he could think about: that it was gone, lost, leaving him only himself, his
shame, his emptiness.
"You aren't being fair," Goha said to Tenar.
"Fair!" said Tenar. "Did he play fair?"
"Yes," said Goha. "He did. Or tried to".
"Well, then, he can play fair with the goats he's herding; it's nothing
to me," said Tenar, trudging homeward in the wind and the first, sparse, cold
rain.
"Snow tonight, maybe," said her tenant Tiff, meeting her on the road
beside the meadows of the Kaheda.
"Snow so soon? I hope not."
"Freeze, anyway, for sure."
And it froze when the sun was down: rain puddles and watering troughs
skimming over, then opaqued with ice; the reeds by the Kaheda stilled, bound
in ice; the wind itself stilled as if frozen, unable to move.
Beside the fire-a sweeter fire than Ivy's, for the wood was that of an
old apple that had been taken down in the orchard last spring-Tenar and
Therru sat to spin and talk after supper was cleared away.
"Tell the story about the cat ghosts,'" Therru said in her husky voice as
she started the wheel to spin a mass of dark, silky goat's-wool into
fleecefell yarn.
"That's a summer story."
Therru cocked her head.
"In winter the stories should be the great stories. In winter you learn
the Creation of E`a, so that you can sing it at the Long Dance when summer
comes. In winter you learn the Winter Carol and the Deed of the Young King,
and at the Festival of Sunreturn, when the sun turns north to bring the
spring, you can sing them."
"I can't sing," the girl whispered.
Tenar was winding spun yarn off the distaff into a ball, her hands deft
and rhythmic.
"Not only the voice sings," she said. "The mind sings. The prettiest
voice in the world's no good if the mind doesn't know the songs." She untied
the last bit of yarn, which had been the first spun. "You have strength,
Therru, and strength that is ignorant is dangerous."
"Like the ones who wouldn't learn," Therru said. "The wild ones." Tenar
did not know what she meant, and looked her question. "The ones that stayed
in the west," Therru said.
"Ah-the dragons-in the song of the Woman of Kemay. Yes. Exactly. So:
which will we start with-how the islands were raised from the sea, or how
King Morred drove back the Black Ships?" "
"The islands," Therru whispered. Tenar had rather hoped she would choose
the Deed of the Young King, for she saw Lebannen's face as Morred's; but the
child's choice was the right one. "Very well," she said. She glanced up at
Ogion's great Lore-books on the mantel, encouraging herself that if she
forgot, she could find the words there; and drew breath; and began.
By her bedtime Therru knew how Segoy had raised the first of the islands from
the depths of Time. Instead of singing to her, Tenar sat on the bed after
tucking her in, and they recited together, softly, the first stanza of the
song of the Making.
Tenar carried the little oil lamp back to the kitchen, listening to the
absolute silence. The frost had bound the world, locked it. No star showed.
Blackness pressed at the single window of the kitchen. Cold lay on the stone
floors.
She went back to the fire, for she was not sleepy yet. The great words of
the song had stirred her spirit, and there was still anger and unrest in her
from her talk with Ivy. She took the poker to rouse up a little flame from
the backlog. As she struck the log, there was an echo of the sound in the
back of the house.
She straightened up and stood listening.
Again: a soft, dull thump or thud-outside the house-at the dairy window?
The poker still in her hand, Tenar went down the dark hall to the door
that gave on the cool-room. Beyond the cool-room was the dairy. The house was
built against a low hill, and both those rooms ran back into the hill like
cellars, though on a level with the rest of the house. The cool-room had only
air-vents; the dairy had a door and a window, low and wide like the kitchen
window, in its one outside wall. Standing at the cool-room door, she could
hear that window being pried or jimmied, and men's voices whispering.
Flint had been a methodical householder. Every door but one of his house
had a bar-bolt on each side of it, a stout length of cast iron set in slides.
All were kept clean and oiled; none were ever locked.
She slipped the bolt across the cool-room door. It slid into place
without a sound, fitting snug into the heavy iron slot on the doorjamb.
She heard the outer door of the dairy opened. One of them had finally
thought to try it, before they broke the window, and found it wasn't locked.
She heard the mutter of voices again. Then silence, long enough that she
heard her heartbeat drumming in her ears so loud she feared she could not
hear any sound over it. She felt her legs trembling and trembling, and felt
the cold of the floor creep up under her skirt like a hand.
"It's open," a man's voice whispered near her, and her heart leapt
painfully. She put her hand on the bolt, thinking it was open-she had
unlocked not locked it- She had almost slid it back when she heard the door
between the cool-room and the dairy creak, opening. She knew that creak of
the upper hinge. She knew the voice that had spoken, too, but in a different
way of knowing. "It's a storeroom," Handy said, and then, as the door she
stood against rattled against the bolt, "This one's locked." It rattled
again. A thin blade of light, like a knife blade, flicked between the door
and the jamb. It touched her breast, and she drew back as if it had cut her.
The door rattled again, but not much. It was solid, solidly hinged, and
the bolt was firm.
They muttered together on the other side of the door. She knew they were
planning to come around and try the front of the house. She found herself at
the front door, bolting it, not knowing how she came there. Maybe this was a
nightmare. She had had this dream, that they were trying to get into the
house, that they drove thin knives through the cracks of the doors. The
doors-was there any other door they could get in? The windows-the shutters of
the bedroom windows- Her breath came so short she thought she could not get
to Therru's room, but she was there, she brought the heavy wooden shutters
across the glass. The hinges were stiff, and they came together with a bang.
Now they knew. Now they were coming. They would come to the window of the
next room, her room. They would be there before she could close the shutters.
And they were.
She saw the faces, blurs moving in the darkness outside, as she tried to
free the left-hand shutter from its hasp. It was stuck. She could not make it
move. A hand touched the glass, flattening white against it.
"There she is."
"Let us in. We won't hurt you."
"We just want to talk to you."
"He just wants to see his little girl."
She got the shutter free and dragged it across the window. But if they
broke the glass they would be able to push the shutters open from the
outside. The fastening was only a hook that would pull out of the wood if
forced.
"Let us in and we won't hurt you," one of the voices said. She heard
their feet on the frozen ground, crackling in the fallen leaves. Was Therru
awake? The crash of the shutters closing might have wakened her, but she had
made no sound. Tenar stood in the doorway between her room and Therru's, It
was pitch-dark, silent. She was afraid to touch the child and waken her. She
must stay in the room with her. She must fight for her. She had had the poker
in her hand, where had she put it? She had put it down to close the shutters.
She could not find it. She groped for it in the blackness of the room that
seemed to have no walls.
The front door, which led into the kitchen, rattled, shaken in its frame.
If she could find the poker she would stay in here, she would fight them.
"Here!" one of them called, and she knew what he had found. He was
looking up at the kitchen window, broad, unshuttered, easy to reach.
She went, very slowly it seemed, groping, to the door of the room. It was
Therru's room now. It had been her children's room. The nursery. That was why
there was no lock on the inner side of the door. So the children could not
lock themselves in and be frightened if the bolt stuck.
Around back of the hill, through the orchard, Clearbrook and Shandy would
be asleep in their cottage. If she called, maybe Shandy would hear. If she
opened the bedroom window and called-or if she waked Therru and they climbed
out the window and ran through the orchard-but the men were there, right
there, waiting.
It was more than she could bear. The frozen terror that had bound her
broke, and in rage she ran into the kitchen that was all red light in her
eyes, grabbed up the long, sharp butcher knife from the block, flung back the
door-bolt, and stood in the doorway. "Come on, then!" " she said.
As she spoke there was a howl and a sucking gasp, and a man yelled, "Look
out!" Another shouted, "Here! Here!"
Then there was silence.
Light from the open doorway shot across the black ice of puddles,
glittered on the black branches of the oaks and on fallen silver leaves, and
as her eyes cleared she saw that something was crawling towards her on the
path, a dark mass or heap crawling towards her, making a high, sobbing wail.
Behind the light a black shape ran and darted, and long blades shone.
"Tenar!"
"Stop there," she said, raising the knife.
"Tenar! It's me-Hawk, Sparrowhawk!"
"Stay there," she said.
The darting black shape stood still next to the black mass lying on the
path. The light from the doorway shone dim on a body, a face, a long-tined
pitchfork held upright, like a wizard's staff, she thought. "Is that you?"
she said.
He was kneeling now by the black thing on the path.
"I killed him, I think," he said. He looked over his shoulder, stood up.
There was no sign or sound of the other men.
"Where are they?"
"Ran. Give me a hand, Tenar."
She held the knife in one hand. With the other she took hold of the arm
of the man that lay huddled up on the path. Ged took him under the shoulder
and they dragged him up the step and into the house. He lay on the stone
floor of the kitchen, and blood ran out of his chest and belly like water
from a pitcher. His upper lip was drawn back from his teeth, and only the
whites of his eyes showed.
"Lock the door," Ged said, and she locked the door.
"Linens in the press," she said, and he got a sheet and tore it for
bandages, which she bound round and round the man's belly and breast, into
which three of the four tines of the pitchfork had driven full force, making
three ragged springs of blood that dripped and squirted as Ged supported the
man's torso so that she could wrap the bandages.
"What are you doing here? Did you come with them?"
"Yes. But they didn't know it. That's about all you can do, Tenar. " He
let the man's body sag down, and sat back, breathing hard, wiping his face
with the back of his bloody hand. "I think I killed him," he said again.
"Maybe you did." Tenar watched the bright red spots spread slowly on the
heavy linen that wrapped the man's thin, hairy chest and belly. She stood up,
and swayed, very dizzy. "Get by the fire," she said. "You must be perishing."
She did not know how she had known him in the dark outside. By his voice,
maybe. He wore a bulky shepherd's winter coat of cut fleece with the leather
side out, and a
shepherd's knit watch cap pulled down; his face was lined and weathered, his
hair long and iron-grey. He smelled like woodsmoke, and frost, and sheep. He
was shivering, his whole body shaking. "Get by the fire," she said again.
"Put wood on it."
He did so. Tenar filled the kettle and swung it out on its iron arm over
the blaze.
There was blood on her skirt, and she used an end of linen soaked in cold
water to clean it. She gave the cloth to Ged to clean the blood off his
hands. "What do you mean, she said, "you came with them but they didn't know
it?"
"I was coming down. From the mountain. On the road from the springs of
the Kaheda. " He spoke in a flat voice as if out of breath, and his shivering
made his speech slur. "Heard men behind me, and I went aside. Into the woods.
Didn't feel like talking. I don't know. Something about them. I was afraid of
them."
She nodded impatiently and sat down across the hearth from him, leaning
forward to listen, her hands clenched tight in her lap. Her damp skirt was
cold against her legs.
"I heard one of them say 'Oak Farm' as they went by. After that I
followed them. One of them kept talking. About the child."
"What did he say?"
He was silent. He said finally, "That he was going to get her back.
Punish her, he said. And get back at you. For stealing her, he said. He
said-" He stopped.
"That he'd punish me, too."
"They all talked. About, about that."
"That one isn't Handy." She nodded toward the man on the floor. "Is it
the. . . " . . . "
"He said she was his." Ged looked at the man too, and back at the fire.
"He's dying. We should get help."
"He won't die," Tenar said. "I'll send for Ivy in the morning. The others are
still out there-how many of them?"
"Two."
"If he dies he dies, if he lives he lives. Neither of us is going out."
She got to her feet, in a spasm of fear. "Did you bring in the pitchfork,
Ged!" "
He pointed to it, the four long tines shining as it leaned against the
wall beside the door.
She sat down in the hearthseat again, but now she was shaking, trembling
from head to foot, as he had done. He reached across the hearth to touch her
arm. "It's all right," he said.
"What if they're still out there?"
"They ran."
"They could come back."
"Two against two? And we've got the pitchfork."
She lowered her voice to a bare whisper to say, in terror, "The pruning
hook and the scythes are in the barn lean-to."
He shook his head. "They ran. They saw-him-and you in the door."
"What did you do?"
"He came at me. So I came at him."
"I mean, before. On the road."
"They got cold, walking. It started to rain, and they got cold, and
started talking about coming here. Before that it was only this one, talking
about the child and you, about teaching-teaching lessons-" His voice dried
up. "I'm thirsty," he said.
"So am I. The kettle's not boiling yet. Go on.
He took breath and tried to tell his story coherently. "The other two
didn't listen to him much. Heard it all before, maybe. They were in a hurry
to get on. To get to Valmouth. As if they were running from somebody. Getting
away. But it got cold, and he went on about Oak Farm, and the one with the
cap said, 'Well, why not just go there and spend the night with-" " .
"With the widow, yes."
Ged put his face in his hands. She waited.
He looked into the fire, and went on steadily. "Then I lost them for a
while. The road came out level into the valley, and I couldn't follow along
the way I'd been doing, in the woods, just behind them. I had to go aside,
through the fields, keeping out of their sight. I don't know the country
here, only the road. I was afraid if I cut across the fields I'd get lost,
miss the house. And it was getting dark. I thought I'd missed the house,
overshot it. I came back to the road, and almost ran into them-at the turn
there. They'd seen the old man go by. They decided to wait till it was dark
and they were sure nobody else was coming. They waited in the barn. I stayed
outside. Just through the wall from them."
"You must be frozen," Tenar said dully.
"It was cold." He held his hands to the fire as if the thought of it had
chilled him again. "I found the pitchfork by the lean-to door. They went
around to the back of the house when they came out. I could have come to the
front door then to warn you, it's what I should have done, but all I could
think of was to take them by surprise-I thought it was my only advantage,
chance. . . . I thought the house would be locked and they'd have to break
in. But then I heard them going in, at the back, there. I went in-into the
dairy-after them. I only just got out, when they came to the locked door." He
gave a kind of laugh. "They went right by me in the dark. I could have
tripped them. . . . One of them had a flint and steel, he'd burn a little
tinder when they wanted to see a lock. They came around front. I heard you
putting up the shutters; I knew you'd heard them. They talked about smashing
the window they'd seen you at. Then the one with the cap saw the window-that
window-" He nodded toward the kitchen window, with its deep, broad inner
sill. "He said, 'Get me a rock, I'll smash that right open,' and they came to
where he was, and they were about to hoist him up to the sill. So I let out a
yell, and he dropped down, and one of them-this one-came running right at me.
"Ah, ah," " gasped the man lying on the floor, as if telling Ged's tale
for him. Ged got up and bent over him.
"He's dying, I think."
"No, he's not," Tenar said. She could not stop shaking entirely, but it
was only an inward tremor now. The kettle was singing. She made a pot of tea,
and laid her hands on the thick pottery sides of the teapot while it steeped.
She poured out two cups, then a third, into which she put a little cold
water. "It's too hot to drink," she told Ged, "hold it a minute first. I'll
see if this'll go into him." She sat down on the floor by the man's head,
lifted it on one arm, put the cup of cooled tea to his mouth, pushed the rim
between the bared teeth. The warm stuff ran into his mouth; he swallowed. "He
won't die," she said. "The floor's like ice. Help me move him nearer the
fire."
Ged started to take the rug from a bench that ran along the wall between the
chimney and the hall. "Don't use that, it's a good piece of weaving," Tenar
said, and she went to the closet and brought out a worn-out felt cloak, which
she spread out as a bed for the man. They hauled the inert body onto it,
lapped it over him. The soaked red spots on the bandages had grown no larger.
Tenar stood up, and stood motionless.
"Therru," she said.
Ged looked round, but the child was not there. Tenar went hurriedly out
of the room.
The children's room, the child's room, was perfectly dark and quiet. She
felt her way to the bed, and laid her hand on the warm curve of the blanket
over Therru's shoulder.
"Therru?"
The child's breathing was peaceful. She had not waked. Tenar could feel
the heat of her body, like a radiance in the cold room.
As she went out, Tenar ran her hand across the chest of drawers and
touched cold metal: the poker she had laid down when she closed the shutters.
She brought it back to the kitchen, stepped over the man's body, and hung the
poker on its hook on the chimney. She stood looking down at the fire.
"I couldn't do anything," she said. "What should I have done? Run
out-right away-shouted, and run to Clear-brook and Shandy. They wouldn't have
had time to hurt Therru."
"They would have been in the house with her, and you outside it, with the
old man and woman. Or they could have picked her up and gone clear away with
her. You did what you could. What you did was right. Timed right. The light
from the house, and you coming out with the knife, and me there-they could
see the pitchfork then-and him down. So they ran."
"Those that could," said Tenar. She turned and stirred the man's leg a
little with the toe of her shoe, as if he were an object she was a little
curious about, a little repelled by, like a dead viper. "You did the
right thing," she said.
"I don't think he even saw it. He ran right onto it, It was like-" He did
not say what it was like. He said, "Drink your tea," and poured himself
more from the pot keeping warm on the hearthbricks. "It's good. Sit down," he
said, and she did so.
"When I was a boy," he said after a time, "the Kargs raided my village.
They had lances-long, with feathers tied to the shaft-"
She nodded. "Warriors of the God-Brothers," she said. "I made a . . . a
fog-spell. To confuse them. But they came on, some of them. I saw one of them
run right onto a pitchfork-like him, Only it went clear through him. Below
the waist."
"You hit a rib," Tenar said.
He nodded.
"It was the only mistake you made," she said. Her teeth were chattering
now. She drank her tea. "Ged," she said, "what if they come back?"
"They won't."
"They could set fire to the house."
"This house?" He looked around at the stone walls.
"The haybarn-"
"They won't be back," he said, doggedly.
"No."
They held their cups with care, warming their hands on them.
"She slept through it."
"It's well she did."
"But she'll see him-here-in the morning-"
They stared at each other.
"If I'd killed him-if he'd die!" Ged said with rage. "I could drag him
out and bury him-"
"Do it."
He merely shook his head angrily.
"What does it matter, why, why can't we do it!" Tenar demanded .
"I don't know."
"As soon as it gets light-"
"I'll get him out of the house. Wheelbarrow. The old man can help me."
"He can't lift anything any more. I'll help you."
"However I can do it, I'll cart him off to the village. There's a healer
of some kind there?"
"A witch, Ivy."
She felt all at once abysmally, infinitely weary. She could scarcely hold
the cup in her hand .
"There's more tea," she said, thick-tongued.
He poured himself another cupful.
The fire danced in her eyes. The flames swam, flared up, sank away,
brightened again against the sooty stone, against the dark sky, against the
pale sky, the gulfs of evening, the depths of air and light beyond the world.
Flames of yellow, orange, orange-red, red tongues of flame, flame-tongues,
the words she could not speak.
"Tenar."
"We call the star Tehanu," she said.
"Tenar, my dear. Come on. Come with me."
They were not at the fire. They were in the dark-in the dark hall. The
dark passage. They had been there before, leading each other, following each
other, in the darkness underneath the earth.
"This is the way," she said.
Winter
She was waking, not wanting to waken. Faint grey shone at the window in thin
slits through the shutters. Why was the window shuttered? She got up
hurriedly and went down the hail to the kitchen. No one sat by the fire, no
one lay on the floor, There was no sign of anyone, anything. Except the
teapot and three cups on the counter.
Therru got up about sunrise, and they breakfasted as usual; clearing up,
the girl asked, "What happened?" She lifted a corner of wet linen from the
soaking-tub in the pantry. The water in the tub was veined and clouded with
brownish red.
"Oh, my period came on early," Tenar said, startled at the lie as she
spoke it.
Therru stood a moment motionless, her nostrils flared and her head still,
like an animal getting a scent. Then she dropped the sheeting back into the
water, and went out to feed the chickens.
Tenar felt ill; her bones ached. The weather was still cold, and she
stayed indoors as much as she could.. She tried to keep Therru in, but when
the sun came out with a keen, bright wind, Therru wanted to be out in it.
"Stay with Shandy in the orchard," Tenar said.
Therru said nothing as she slipped out.
The burned and deformed side of her face was made rigid by the
destruction of muscles and the thickness of the scar-surface, but as the
scars got older and as Tenar learned by long usage not to look away from it
as deformity but to see it as face, it had expressions of its own. When
Therru was frightened, the burned and darkened side "closed in," as Tenar
thought, drawing together, hardening. When she was excited or intent, even
the blind eye socket seemed to gaze, and the scars reddened and were hot to
touch. Now, as she went out, there was a queer look to her, as if her face
were not human at all, an animal, some strange horny-skinned wild creature
with one bright eye, silent, escaping.
And Tenar knew that as she had lied to her for the first time, Therru for
the first time was going to disobey her. The first but not the last time.
She sat down at the fireside with a weary sigh, and did nothing at all
for a while.
A rap at the door: Clearbrook and Ged-no, Hawk she must call him-Hawk
standing on the doorstep. Old Clear-brook was full of talk and importance,
Ged dark and quiet and bulky in his grimy sheepskin coat. "Come in," she
said. "Have some tea. What's the news?"
"Tried to get away, down to Valmouth, but the men from Kahedanan, the
bailies, come down and 'twas in Cherry's outhouse they found 'em," Clearbrook
announced, waving his fist.
"He escaped?" Horror caught at her.
"The other two," Ged said. "Not him."
"See, they found the body up in the old shambles on Round Hill, all beat
to pieces like, up in the old shambles there, by Kahedanan, so ten, twelve of
'em 'pointed their-selves bailies then and there and come after them. And
there was a search all through the villages last night, and this morning
before 'twas hardly light they found 'em hiding out in Cherry's outhouse.
Half-froze they was."
"He's dead, then?" she asked, bewildered.
Ged had shucked off the heavy coat and was now sitting on the cane-bottom
chair by the door to undo his leather gaiters. "He's alive," he said in his
quiet voice. "Ivy has him. I took him in this morning on the muck-cart. There
were people out on the road before daylight, hunting for all three of them.
They'd killed a woman, up in the hills."
"What woman?" Tenar whispered.
Her eyes were on Ged's. He nodded slightly. Clearbrook wanted the story
to be his, and took it up loudly: "I talked with some o' them from up there
and they told me they'd all four of 'em been traipsing and camping and
vagranting about near Kahedanan, and the woman would come into the village to
beg, all beat about and burns and bruises all over her. They'd send her in,
the men would, see, like that to beg, and then she'd go back to 'em, and she
told people if she went back with nothing they'd beat her more, so they said
why go back? But if she didn't they'd come after her, she said, see, and
she'd always go with 'em. But then they finally went too far and beat her to
death, and they took and left her body in the old shambles there where
there's still some o' the stink left, you know, maybe thinking that was
hiding what they done. And they came away then, down here, just last night.
And why didn't you shout and call last night, Goha? Hawk says they was right
here, sneaking about the house, when he come on em. I surely would have
heard, or Shandy would, her ears might be sharper than mine. Did you tell her
yet?"
Tenar shook her head.
"I'll just go tell her," said the old man, delighted to be first with the
news, and he clumped off across the yard. He turned back halfway. "Never
would have picked you as useful with a pitchfork!" he shouted to Ged, and
slapped his thigh, laughing, and went on.
Ged slipped off the heavy gaiters, took off his muddy shoes and set them
on the doorstep, and came over to the fire in his stocking feet. Trousers and
jerkin and shirt of homespun wool: a Gontish goatherd, with a canny face, a
hawk nose, and clear, dark eyes.
"There'll be people out soon," he said. "To tell you all about it, and
hear what happened here again. They've got the two that ran off shut up now
in a wine cellar with no wine in it, and fifteen or twenty men guarding them,
and twenty or thirty boys trying to get a peek He yawned, shook his
shoulders and arms to loosen them, and with a glance at Tenar asked
permission to sit down at the fire.
She gestured to the hearthseat. "You must be worn out, she whispered.
"I slept a little, here, last night. Couldn't stay awake." He yawned
again. He looked up at her, gauging, seeing how she was.
"It was Therru's mother," she said. Her voice would not go above a
whisper.
He nodded. He sat leaning forward a bit, his arms on his knees, as Flint
had used to sit, gazing into the fire. They were very alike and entirely
unlike, as unlike as a buried stone and a soaring bird. Her heart ached, and
her bones ached, and her mind was bewildered among foreboding and grief and
remembered fear and a troubled lightness.
"The witch has got our man," he said. "Tied down in case he feels lively,
With the holes in him stuffed full of spiderwebs and blood-stanching spells.
She says he'll live to hang."
"To hang."
"It's up to the King's Courts of Law, now that they're meeting again. Hanged
or set to slave-labor."
She shook her head, frowning.
"You wouldn't just let him go, Tenar," ' he said gently, watching her.
"No."
"They must be punished," he said, still watching her.
"Punished." That's what he said. Punish the child. She's bad. She must be
punished. Punish me, for taking her. For being-' ' She struggled to speak. "I
don't want punishment! - It should not have happened. - I wish you'd killed
him!"
"I did my best," Ged said.
After a good while she laughed, rather shakily. "You certainly did."
"Think how easy it would have been," he said, looking into the coals
again, "when I was a wizard. I could have set a binding spell on them, up
there on the road, before they knew it. I could have marched them right down
to Valmouth like a flock of sheep. Or last night, here, think of the
fireworks I could have set off! They'd never have known what hit them."
"They still don't," she said.
He glanced at her. There was in his eye the faintest, irrepressible gleam
of triumph.
"No," he said. "They don't."
"Useful with a pitchfork," she murmured.
He yawned enormously.
"Why don't you go in and get some sleep? The second room down the hall.
Unless you want to entertain company. I see Lark and Daisy coming, and some
of the children." She had got up, hearing voices, to look out the window.
"I'll do that," he said, and slipped away.
Lark and her husband, Daisy the blacksmith's wife, and other friends from
the village came by all day long to tell and be told all, as Ged had said.
She found that their company revived her, carried her away from the constant
presence of last night's terror, little by little, till she could begin to
look back on it as something that had happened, not something that was
happening, that must always be happening to her.
That was also what Therru had to learn to do, she thought, but not with
one night: with her life.
She said to Lark when the others had gone, "What makes me rage at myself
is how stupid I was."
"I did tell you you ought to keep the house locked."
"No-Maybe-That's just it. ' '
"I know,' ' said Lark.
"But I meant, when they were here-I could have run out and fetched Shandy
and Clearbrook-maybe I could have taken Therru, Or I could have gone to the
lean-to and got the pitchfork myself. Or the apple-pruner. It's seven feet
long with a blade like a razor; I keep it the way Flint kept it. Why didn't I
do that? Why didn't I do something? Why did I just lock myself in-when it
wasn't any good trying to? If he- If Hawk hadn't been here- All I did was
trap myself and Therru. I did finally go to the door with the butcher knife,
and I shouted at them. I was half crazy. But that wouldn't have scared them
off."
"I don't know," Lark said. "It was crazy, but maybe . . . I don't know.
What could you do but lock the doors? But it's like we're all our lives
locking the doors. It's the house we live in."
They looked around at the stone walls, the stone floors, the stone
chimney, the sunny window of the kitchen of Oak Farm, Farmer Flint's house.
"That girl, that woman they murdered," Lark said, looking shrewdly at
Tenar. "She was the same one." Tenar nodded.
"One of them told me she was pregnant. Four, five months along."
They were both silent.
"Trapped," Tenar said.
Lark sat back, her hands on the skirt on her heavy thighs, her back
straight, her handsome face set. "Fear," she said. "What are we so afraid of?
Why do we let 'em tell us we're afraid? What is it they're afraid of? ' ' She
picked up the stocking she had been darning, turned it in her hands, was
silent awhile; finally she said, "What are they afraid of us for?"
Tenar spun and did not answer.
Therru came running in, and Lark greeted her: "There's my honey! Come
give me a hug, my honey girl!"
Therru hugged her hastily. "Who are the men they caught?" she demanded in
her hoarse, toneless voice, looking from Lark to Tenar.
Tenar stopped her wheel. She spoke slowly.
"One was Handy. One was a man called Shag. The one that was hurt is
called Hake." She kept her eyes on Therru's face; she saw the fire, the scar
reddening. "The woman they killed was called Senny, I think."
"Senini,' ' the child whispered.
Tenar nodded.
"Did they kil lher dead?"
She nodded again.
"Tadpole says they were here."
She nodded again.
The child looked around the room, as the women had done; but her look was
utterly unacceptant, seeing no walls.
"Will you kill them?"
"They may be hanged."
"Dead?"
"Yes."
Therru nodded, half indifferently. She went out again, rejoining Lark's
children by the wellhouse.
The two women said nothing. They spun and mended, silent, by the fire, in
Flint's house.
After a long time Lark said, "What's become of the fellow, the shepherd,
that followed 'em here? Hawk, you said he's called?"
"He's asleep in there,' ' said Tenar, nodding to the back of the house.
"Ah," said Lark.
The wheel purred. "I knew him before last night."
"Ah. Up at Re Albi, did you?"
Tenar nodded. The wheel purred.
"To follow those three, and take 'em on in the dark with a pitchfork,
that took a bit of courage, now. Not a young man, is he?"
"No." After a while she went on, "He'd been ill, and needed work. So I
sent him over the mountain to tell Clear-brook to take him on here. But
Clearbrook thinks he can still do it all himself, so he sent him up above the
Springs for the summer herding. He was coming back from that."
"Think you'll keep him on here, then?" '"If he likes," said Tenar.
Another group came out to Oak Farm from the village, wanting to hear Goha's
story and tell her their part in the great capture of the murderers, and look
at the pitchfork and compare its four long tines to the three bloody spots on
the bandages of the man called Hake, and talk it all over again. Tenar was
glad to see the evening come, and call Therru in, and shut the door.
She raised her hand to latch it. She lowered her hand and forced herself
to turn from it, leaving it unlocked.
"Sparrowhawk's in your room," Therru informed her, coming back to the
kitchen with eggs from the cool-room.
"I meant to tell you he was here-I'm sorry.
"I know him," Therru said, washing her face and hands in the pantry. And
when Ged came in, heavy-eyed and unkempt, she went straight to him and put up
her arms.
"Therru," he said, and took her up and held her. She clung to him
briefly, then broke free.
"I know the beginning part of the Creation," she told him. "Will you sing
it to me?" Again glancing at Tenar for permission, he sat down in his place
at the hearth.
"I can only say it."
He nodded and waited, his face rather stern. The child said:
The making from the unmaking,
The ending from the beginning,
Who shall know surely?
What we know is the doorway between them
that we enter departing.
Among all beings ever returning,
the eldest, the Doorkeeper, Segoy.. . .
The child's voice was like a metal brush drawn across metal, like dry
leaves, like the hiss of fire burning. She spoke to the end of the first
stanza:
Then from the foam bright E`a broke.
Ged nodded brief, firm approval. "Good," he said.
"Last night, " Tenar said. "Last night she learned it. It seems a year
ago."
"I can learn more," said Therru.
"You will," Ged told her.
"Now finish cleaning the squash, please," said Tenar, and the child
obeyed.
"What shall I do?" ' Ged asked. Tenar paused, looking at him.
"I need that kettle filled and heated."
He nodded, and took the kettle to the pump. They made and ate their
supper and cleared it away. "Say the Making again as far as you know it," Ged
said to Therru, at the hearth, "and we'll go on from there."
She said the second stanza once with him, once with Tenar, once by
herself.
"Bed," said Tenar.
"You didn't tell Sparrowhawk about the king."
"You tell him," ' Tenar said, amused at this pretext for delay.
Therru turned to Ged. Her face, scarred and whole, seeing and blind, was
intent, fiery. "The king came in a ship. He had a sword. He gave me the bone
dolphin. His ship was flying, but I was sick, because Handy touched me. But
the king touched me there and the mark went away. She showed her round, thin
arm. Tenar stared. She had forgotten the mark.
"Some day I want to fly to where he lives," Therru told Ged. He nodded.
"I will do that,' ' she said. "Do you know him?"
"Yes. I know him. I went on a long journey with him."
"Where?"
"To where the sun doesn't rise and the stars don't set. And back from
that place."
"Did you fly?"
He shook his head. "I can only walk," he said.
The child pondered, and then as if satisfied said, "Good night," and went off
to her room. Tenar followed her; but Therru did not want to be sung to sleep.
"I can say the Making in the dark," she said. "Both stanzas."
Tenar came back to the kitchen and sat down again across the hearth from
Ged.
"How she's changing!" she said. "I can't keep up with her. I'm old to be
bringing up a child. And she . . . She obeys me, but only because she wants
to."
"It's the only justification for obedience," Ged observed. "But when she
does take it into her head to disobey me, what can I do? There's a wildness
in her. Sometimes she's my Therru, sometimes she's something else, out of
reach. I asked Ivy if she'd think of training her. Beech suggested it. Ivy
said no. 'Why not?' I said. 'I'm afraid of her!' she said. . . . But you're
not afraid of her. Nor she of you. You and Lebannen are the only men she's
let touch her. I let that-that Handy-I can't talk about it. Oh, I'm tired! I
don't understand anything
Ged laid a knot on the fire to burn small and slow, and they both watched
the leap and flutter of the flames.
"I'd like you to stay here, Ged," she said. "If you like." He did not
answer at once. She said, "Maybe you're going on to Havnor-"
"No, no. I have nowhere to go. I was looking for work."
"Well, there's plenty to be done here. Clearbrook won't admit it, but his
arthritis has about finished him for anything but gardening. I've been
wanting help ever since I came back. I could have told the old blockhead what
I thought of him for sending you off up the mountain that way, but it's no
use. He wouldn't listen."
"It was a good thing for me," Ged said. "It was the time I needed."
"You were herding sheep?"
"Goats. Right up at the top of the grazings. A boy they had took sick,
and Serry took me on, sent me up there the first day. They keep 'em up there
high and late, so the underwool grows thick. This last month I had the
mountain pretty much to myself. Serry sent me up that coat and some supplies,
and said to keep the herd up as high as I could as long as I could. So I did.
It was fine, up there."
"Lonely," she said.
He nodded, half smiling.
"You always have been alone."
"Yes, I have."
She said nothing. He looked at her.
"I'd like to work here," he said.
"That's settled, then," ' she said. After a while she added, "For the
winter, anyway."
The frost was harder tonight. Their world was perfectly silent except for
the whisper of the fire. The silence was like a presence between them. She
lifted her head and looked at him.
"Well," she said, "which bed shall I sleep in, Ged? The child's, or
yours?"
He drew breath. He spoke low. "Mine, if you will."
"I will."
The silence held him. She could see the effort he made to break from it.
"If you'll be patient with me," he said.
"I have been patient with you for twenty-five years," she said. She
looked at him and began to laugh. "Come-come on, my dear-Better late than
never! I'm only an old woman. . . . Nothing is wasted, nothing is ever
wasted. You taught me that." She stood up, and he stood; she put out her
hands, and he took them. They embraced, and their embrace became close. They
held each other so fiercely, so dearly, that they stopped knowing anything
but each other. It did not matter which bed they meant to sleep in. They lay
that night on the hearthstones, and there she taught Ged the mystery that the
wisest man could not teach him.
He built up the fire once, and fetched the good weaving off the bench.
Tenar made no objection this time. Her cloak and his sheepskin coat were
their blankets.
They woke again at dawn. A faint silvery light lay on the dark,
half-leafless branches of the oaks outside the window. Tenar stretched out
full length to feel his warmth against her. After a while she murmured, "He
was lying here. Hake. Right under us." . . .
Ged made a small noise of protest.
"Now you're a man indeed," she said. "Stuck another man full of holes,
first, and lain with a woman, second. That's the proper order, I suppose.
"Hush," he murmured, turning to her, laying his head on her shoulder.
"Don't."
"I will, Ged. Poor man! There's no mercy in me, only justice. I wasn't
trained to mercy. Love is the only grace I have. Oh, Ged, don't fear me! You
were a man when I first saw you! It's not a weapon or a woman can make a man,
or magery either, or any power, anything but himself."
They lay in warmth and sweet silence.
"Tell me something."
He murmured assent sleepily.
"How did you happen to hear what they were saying? Hake and Handy and the
other one. How did you happen to be just there, just then?"
He raised himself up on one elbow so he could look at her face. His own
face was so open and vulnerable in its ease and fulfillment and tenderness
that she had to reach up and touch his mouth, there where she had kissed it
first, months ago, which led to his taking her into his arms again, and the
conversation was not continued in words.
There were formalities to be got through. The chief of them was to tell
Clearbrook and the other tenants of Oak Farm that she had replaced "the old
master" with a hired hand. She did so promptly and bluntly. They could not do
anything about it, nor did it entail any threat to them. A widow's tenure of
her husband's property was contingent on there being no male heir or
claimant. Flint's son the seaman was the heir, and Flint's widow was merely
holding the farm for him. If she died, it would go to Clearbrook to hold for
the heir; if Spark never claimed it, it would go to a distant cousin of
Flint's in Kahedanan. The two couples who did not own the land but held a
life interest in the work and profit of the farming, as was common on Gont,
could not be dislodged by any man the widow took up with, even if she married
him; but she feared they might resent her lack of fidelity to Flint, whom
they had after all known longer than she had. To her relief they made no
objections at all. "Hawk" had won their approval with one jab of a pitchfork.
Besides, it was only good sense in a woman to want a man in the house to
protect her. If she took him into her bed, well, the appetites of widows were
proverbial. And, after all, she was a foreigner.
The attitude of the villagers was much the same. A bit of whispering and
sniggering, but little more. It seemed that being respectable was easier than
Moss thought; or perhaps it was that used goods had little value.
She felt as soiled and diminished by their acceptance as she would have
by their disapproval. Only Lark freed her from shame, by making no
judgments at all, and using no words-man, woman, widow, foreigner-in place of
what she saw, but simply looking, watching her and Hawk with interest,
curiosity, envy, and generosity.
Because Lark did not see Hawk through the words herdsman, hired hand,
widow's man, but looked at him himself, she saw a good deal that puzzled her.
His dignity and simplicity were not greater than that of other men she had
known, but were a little different in quality; there was a size to him, she
thought, not height or girth, certainly, but soul and mind. She said to Ivy,
"That man hasn't lived among goats all his life. He knows more about the
world than he does about a farm."
"I'd say he's a sorcerer who's been accursed or lost his power some way,"
the witch said. "It happens."
"Ah," said Lark.
But the word "archmage" was too great and grand a word to bring from
far-off pomps and palaces and fit to the dark-eyed, grey-haired man at Oak
Farm, and she never did that. If she had, she could not have been as
comfortable with him as she was. Even the idea of his having been a sorcerer
made her a bit uneasy, the word getting in the way of the man, until she
actually saw him again. He was up in one of the old apple trees in the
orchard pruning out deadwood, and he called out a greeting to her as she came
to the farm. His name fit him well, she thought, perched up there, and she
waved at him, and smiled as she went on.
Tenar had not forgotten the question she had asked him on the
hearthstones under the sheepskin coat. She asked it again, a few days or
months later-time went along very sweet and easy for them in the stone house,
on the winterbound farm. "You never told me," ' she said, "how you came to
hear them talking on the road."
"I told you, I think. I'd gone aside, hidden, when I heard
"Why?"
"I was alone, and knew there were some gangs around."
"Yes, of course- But then just as they passed, Hake was talking about
Therru?"
"He said 'Oak Farm,' I think."
"It's all perfectly possible. It just seems so convenient." Knowing she
did not disbelieve him, he lay back and waited .
"It's the kind of thing that happens to a wizard," she said.
"And others."
"Maybe."
"My dear, you're not trying to . . . reinstate me?"
"No. No, not at all. Would that be a sensible thing to do? If you were a
wizard, would you be here?"
They were in the big oak-framed bed, well covered with sheepskins and
feather-coverlets, for the room had no fireplace and the night was one of
hard frost on fallen snow.
"But what I want to know is this. Is there something besides what you
call power-that comes before it, maybe? Or something that power is just one
way of using? Like this. Ogion said of you once that before you'd had any
learning or training as a wizard at all, you were a mage. Mage-born, he said.
So I imagined that, to have power, one must first have room for the power. An
emptiness to fill. And the greater the emptiness the more power can fill it.
But if the power never was got, or was taken away, or was given away-still
that would be there."
"That emptiness," he said.
"Emptiness is one word for it. Maybe not the right word."
"Potentiality?" he said, and shook his head. "What is able to be . . . to
become."
"I think you were there on that road, just there just then, because of
that-because that is what happens to you. You didn't make it happen. You
didn't cause it. It wasn't because of your 'power.' It happened to you.
Because of your emptiness."
After a while he said, "This isn't far from what I was taught as a boy on
Roke: that true magery lies in doing only what you must do. But this would go
further. Not to do, but to be done to. . . .
"I don't think that's quite it. It's more like what true doing rises
from. Didn't you come and save my life-didn't you run a fork into Hake? That
was 'doing,' all right, doing what you must do. . . ."
He pondered again, and finally asked her, "Is this a wisdom taught you
when you were Priestess of the Tombs?"
"No." She stretched a little, gazing into the darkness. "Arha was taught
that to be powerful she must sacrifice. Sacrifice herself and others. A
bargain: give, and so get. And I cannot say that that's untrue. But my soul
can't live in that narrow place-this for that, tooth for tooth, death for
life. . . . There is a freedom beyond that. Beyond payment, retribution,
redemption-beyond all the bargains and the balances, there is freedom."
"The doorway between them," he said softly.
That night Tenar dreamed. She dreamed that she saw the doorway of the
Creation of E`a, It was a little window of gnarled, clouded, heavy glass, set
low in the west wall of an old house above the sea. The window was locked, It
had been bolted shut. She wanted to open it, but there was a word or a key,
something she had forgotten, a word, a key, a name, without which she could
not open it. She sought for it in rooms of stone that grew smaller and darker
till she found that Ged was holding her, trying to wake her and comfort her,
saying, "It's all right, dear love, it will be all right!" ' '
"I can't get free!" she cried, clinging to him.
He soothed her, stroking her hair; they lay back together, and he
whispered, "Look."
The old moon had risen. Its white brilliance on the fallen snow was
reflected into the room, for cold as it was Tenar would not have the shutters
closed. All the air above them was luminous. They lay in shadow, but it
seemed as if the ceiling were a mere veil between them and endless, silver,
tranquil depths of light.
It was a winter of heavy snows on Gont, and a long winter. The harvest had
been a good one. There was food for the animals and people, and not much to
do but eat it and stay warm.
Therru knew the Creation of E`a all through. She spoke the Winter Carol
and the Deed of the Young King on the day of Sunreturn. She knew how to
handle a piecrust, how to spin on the wheel, and how to make soap. She knew
the name and use of every plant that showed above the snow, and a good deal
of other lore, herbal and verbal, that Ged had stowed away in his head from
his short apprenticeship with Ogion and his long years at the School on Roke.
But he had not taken down the Runes or the Lore-books from the mantelpiece,
nor had he taught the child any word of the Language of the Making.
He and Tenar spoke of this. She told him how she had taught Therru the
one word, tolk, and then had stopped, for it had not seemed right, though she
did not know why.
"I thought perhaps it was because I'd never truly spoken that language,
never used it in magery. I thought perhaps she should learn it from a true
speaker of it." ' '
"No man is that."
"No woman is half that."
"I meant that only the dragons speak it as their native tongue."
"Do they learn it?"
Struck by the question, he was slow to answer, evidently calling to mind
all he had been told and knew of the dragons. "I don't know," he said at
last. "What do we know about them? Would they teach as we do, mother to
child, elder to younger? Or are they like the animals, teaching some things,
but born knowing most of what they know? Even that we don't know. But my
guess would be that the dragon and the speech of the dragon are one. One
being."
"And they speak no other tongue."
He nodded. "They do not learn," ' he said. "They are.
Therru came through the kitchen. One of her tasks was to keep the
kindling box filled, and she was busy at it, bundled up in a cut-down
lambskin jacket and cap, trotting back and forth from the woodhouse to the
kitchen. She dumped her load in the box by the chimney corner and set off
again.
"What is it she sings?" Ged asked.
"Therru?"
"When she's alone."
"But she never sings. She can't."
"Her way of singing. 'Farther west than west.' " . . .
"Ah!" said Tenar. "That story! Did Ogion never tell you about the Woman
of Kemay?"
"No," he said, "tell me.
She told him the tale as she spun, and the purr and hush of the wheel
went along with the words of the story. At the end of it she said, "When the
Master Windkey told me how he'd come looking for 'a woman on Gont,' I thought
of her. But she'd be dead by now, no doubt. And how would a fisherwoman who
was a dragon be an archmage, anyhow!"
"Well, the Patterner didn't say that a woman on Gont was to be archmage,'
' said Ged. He was mending a badly torn pair of breeches, sitting up in the
window ledge to get what light the dark day afforded. It was a half-month
after Sunreturn and the coldest time yet.
"What did he say, then?"
"'A woman on Gont. ' So you told me."
"But they were asking who was to be the next archmage."
"And got no answer to that question."
"Infinite are the arguments of mages," said Tenar rather drily.
Ged bit the thread off and rolled the unused length around two fingers.
"I learned to quibble a bit, on Roke," he admitted. "But this isn't a
quibble, I think. 'A woman on Gont' can't become archmage. No woman can be
archmage. She'd unmake what she became in becoming it. The Mages of Roke are
men-their power is the power of men, their knowledge is the knowledge of men.
Both manhood and magery are built on one rock: power belongs to men. If women
had power, what would men be but women who can't bear children? And what
would women be but men who can?"
"Hah!" went Tenar; and presently, with some cunning, she said, "Haven't
there been queens? Weren't they women of power?"
"A queen's only a she-king," ' said Ged.
She snorted.
"I mean, men give her power. They let her use their power. But it isn't
hers, is it? It isn't because she's a woman that she's powerful, but despite
it."
She nodded. She stretched, sitting back from the spinning wheel. "What is
a woman's power, then?" she asked.
"I don't think we know."
"When has a woman power because she's a woman? With her children, I
suppose. For a while." . . . ' '
"In her house, maybe."
She looked around the kitchen. "But the doors are shut," she said, "the
doors are locked."
"Because you're valuable."
"Oh, yes. We're precious. So long as we're powerless. . . . I remember
when I first learned that! Kossil threatened me-me, the One Priestess of the
Tombs. And I realized that I was helpless. I had the honor; but she had the
power, from the God-king, the man. Oh, it made me angry! And frightened me. .
. . Lark and I talked about this once. She said, 'Why are men afraid of
women?'
"If your strength is only the other's weakness, you live in fear," Ged
said.
"Yes; but women seem to fear their own strength, to be afraid of
themselves."
"Are they ever taught to trust themselves?" ' Ged asked, and as he spoke
Therru came in on her work again. His eyes and Tenar's met.
"No," she said. "Trust is not what we're taught." She watched the child
stack the wood in the box. "If power were trust," she said. "I like that
word. If it weren't all these arrangements-one above the other-kings and
masters and mages and owners- It all seems so unnecessary. Real power, real
freedom, would lie in trust, not force."
"As children trust their parents," he said.
They were both silent.
"As things are," he said, "even trust corrupts. The men on Roke trust
themselves and one another. Their power is pure, nothing taints its purity,
and so they take that purity for wisdom. They cannot imagine doing wrong.
She looked up at him. He had never spoken about Roke thus before, from
wholly outside it, free of it.
"Maybe they need some women there to point that possibility out to them,"
she said, and he laughed.
She restarted the wheel. "I still don't see why, if there can be
she-kings, there can't be she-archmages."
Therru was listening.
"Hot snow, dry water," said Ged, a Gontish saying. "Kings are given power
by other men. A mage's power is his own--himself. ' '
"And it's a male power. Because we don't even know what a woman's power
is. All right. I see. But all the same, why can't they find an archmage-a
he-archmage?"
Ged studied the tattered inseam of the breeches. "Well," he said, "if the
Patterner wasn't answering their question, he was answering one they didn't
ask. Maybe what they have to do is ask it."
"Is it a riddle?" Therru asked.
"Yes," said Tenar. "But we don't know the riddle. We only know the answer
to it. The answer is: A woman on Gont."
"There's lots of them," Therru said after pondering a bit. Apparently
satisfied by this, she went out for the next load of kindling.
Ged watched her go. "All changed," he said. "All . . . Sometimes I think,
Tenar - I wonder if Lebannen's kingship is only a beginning. A doorway . . .
And he the doorkeeper. Not to pass through."
"He seems so young," ' Tenar said, tenderly.
"Young as Morred was when he met the Black Ships. Young as I was when I .
. . " He stopped, looking out the window at the grey, frozen fields
through the leafless trees.
"Or you, Tenar, in that dark place . . . What's youth or age?
"I don't know. Sometimes I feel as if I'd been alive for a thousand
years; sometimes I feel my life's been like a flying swallow seen through the
chink of a wall. I have died and been reborn, both in the dry land and here
under the sun, more than once. And the Making tells us that we have all
returned and return forever to the source, and that the source is ceaseless.
Only in dying, life. . . . I thought about that when I was up with the goats
on the mountain, and a day went on forever and yet no time passed before the
evening came, and morning again. . . . I learned goat wisdom. So I thought,
What is this grief of mine for? What man am I mourning? Ged the archmage? Why
is Hawk the goatherd sick with grief and shame for him? What have I done that
I should be ashamed?"
"Nothing," Tenar said. "Nothing, ever!"
"Oh, yes," said Ged. "All the greatness of men is founded on shame, made
out of it. So Hawk the goatherd wept for Ged the archmage. And looked after
the goats, also, as well as a boy his age could be expected to do. . . "
After a while Tenar smiled. She said, a little shyly, "Moss said you were
about fifteen."
"That would be about right. Ogion named me in the autumn; and the next
summer I was off to Roke. . . . Who was that boy? An emptiness . . . A
freedom."
"Who is Therru, Ged?"
He did not answer until she thought he was not going to answer, and then
he said, "So made-what freedom is there for her?"
"We are our freedom, then?"
"I think so."
"You seemed, in your power, as free as man can be. But at what cost? What
made you free? And I . . . I was made, molded like clay, by the will of the
women serving the Old Powers, or serving the men who made all services and
ways and places, I no longer know which. Then I went free, with you, for a
moment, and with Ogion, But it was not my freedom. Only it gave me choice;
and I chose. I chose to mold myself like clay to the use of a farm and a
farmer and our children. I made myself a vessel, I know its shape. But not
the clay. Life danced me. I know the dances. But I don't know who the dancer
is."
"And she," Ged said after a long silence, "if she should ever dance. . ."
'
"They will fear her," Tenar whispered. Then the child came back in, and
the conversation turned to the bread dough raising in the box by the stove.
They talked so, quietly and long, passing from one thing to another and round
and back, for half the brief day, often, spinning and sewing their lives
together with words, the years and the deeds and the thoughts they had not
shared. Then again they would be silent, working and thinking and dreaming,
and the silent child was with them.
So the winter passed, till lambing season was on them, and the work got
very heavy for a while as the days lengthened and grew bright. Then the
swallows came from the isles under the sun, from the South Reach, where the
star Gobardon shines in the constellation of Ending; but all the swallows'
talk with one another was about beginning.
The Master
Like the swallows, the ships began to fly among the islands with the return
of spring, In the villages there was talk, secondhand from Valmouth, of the
king's ships harrying the harriers, driving well-established pirates to ruin,
confiscating their ships and fortunes. Lord Heno himself sent out his three
finest, fastest ships, captained by the sorcererseawolf Tally, who was feared
by every merchantman from Solea to the Andrades; his fleet was to ambush the
king's ships off Oranea and destroy them. But it was one of the king's ships
that came into Valmouth Bay with Tally in chains aboard, and under orders to
escort Lord Heno to Gont Port to be tried for piracy and murder. Heno
barricaded himself in his stone manor house in the hills behind Valmouth, but
neglected to light a fire, it being warm spring weather; so five or six of
the king's young soldiers dropped in on him by way of the chimney, and the
whole troop walked him chained through the streets of Valmouth and carried
him off to justice.
When he heard this, Ged said with love and pride, "All that a king can
do, he will do well."
Handy and Shag had been taken promptly off on the north road to Gont
Port, and when his wounds healed enough Hake was carried there by ship, to be
tried for murder at the king's courts of law. The news of their sentence to
the galleys caused much satisfaction and self-congratulation in Middle
Valley, to which Tenar, and Therru beside her, listened in silence.
There came other ships bearing other men sent by the king, not all of them
popular among the townsfolk and villagers of rude Gont: royal sheriffs, sent
to report on the system of bailiffs and officers of the peace and to hear
complaints and grievances from the common people; tax reporters and tax
collectors; noble visitors to the little lords of Gont, inquiring politely as
to their fealty to the Crown in Havnor; and wizardly men, who went here and
there, seem-ing to do little and say less.
"I think they're hunting for a new archmage after all," said Tenar.
"Or looking for abuses of the art," Ged said-' "sorcery gone wrong."
Tenar was going to say, "Then they should look in the manor house of Re
Albi!" but her tongue stumbled on the words. What was I going to say? she
thought. Did I ever tell Ged about- I'm getting forgetful. What was it I was
going to tell Ged? Oh, that we'd better mend the lower pasture gate before
the cows get out.
There was always something, a dozen things, in the front of her mind,
business of the farm. "Never one thing, for you," Ogion had said. Even with
Ged to help her, all her thoughts and days went into the business of the
farm. He shared the housework with her as Flint had not; but Flint had been a
farmer, and Ged was not. He learned fast, but there was a lot to learn. They
worked. There was little time for talk, now. At the day's end there was
supper together, and bed together, and sleep, and wake at dawn and back to
work, and so round and so round, like the wheel of a water mill, rising full
and emptying, the days like the bright water falling.
"Hello, mother," said the thin fellow at the farmyard gate. She thought it
was Lark's eldest and said, "What brings you by, lad?" Then she looked back
at him across the clucking chickens and the parading geese.
"Spark!" she cried, and scattered the poultry, running to him.
"Well, well," he said. "Don't carry on."
He let her embrace him and stroke his face. He came in and sat down in the
kitchen, at the table.
"Have you eaten? Did you see Apple?"
"I could eat."
She rummaged in the well-stocked larder. "What ship are you on? Still the
Gull?"
"No." A pause. "My ship's broke up."
She turned in horror-"Wrecked?"
"No." He smiled without humor. "Crew's broke up. King's men took her over."
"But-it wasn't a pirate ship-"
"No."
"Then why-?"
"Said the captain was running some goods they wanted," he said, unwillingly.
He was as thin as ever, but looked older, tanned dark, lank-haired, with a
long, narrow face like Flint's but still narrower, harder.
"Where's dad?" he said.
Tenar stood still.
"You didn't stop by your sister's."
"No," he said, indifferent.
"Flint died three years ago," she said. "Of a stroke. In the fields-on the
path up from the lambing pens. Clear-brook found him. It was three years ago.
There was a silence. He did not know what to say, or had nothing to say.
She put food before him. He began to eat so hungrily that she set out more at
once.
"When did you eat last?"
He shrugged, and ate.
She sat down across the table from him. Late-spring sunshine poured in the
low window across the table and shone on the brass fender in the hearth.
He pushed the plate away at last.
"So who's been running the farm?" he asked.
"What's that to you, son?" she asked him, gently but drily.
"It's mine," he said, in a rather similar tone.
After a minute Tenar got up and cleared his dishes away. "So it is."
"You can stay, o' course," he said, very awkwardly, perhaps attempting to
joke; but he was not a joking man. "Old Clearbrook still around?"
"They're all still here. And a man called Hawk, and a child I keep. Here. In
the house. You'll have to sleep in the loft-room. I'll put the ladder up."
She faced him again. "Are you here for a stay, then?"
"I might be."
So Flint had answered her questions for twenty years, denying her right to
ask them by never answering yes or no, maintaining a freedom based on her
ignorance; a poor, narrow sort of freedom, she thought.
"Poor lad," she said, "your crew broken up, and your father dead, and
strangers in your house, all in a day. You'll want some time to get used to
it all. I'm sorry, my son. But I'm glad you're here. I thought of you often,
on the seas, in the storms, in winter."
He said nothing. He had nothing to offer, and was unable to accept. He pushed
back his chair and was about to get up when Therru came in. He stared,
half-risen, "What happened to her?" he said.
"She was burned. Here's my son I told you about, Therru, the sailor, Spark.
Therru's your sister, Spark."
"Sister!"
"By adoption."
"Sister!" he said again, and looked around the kitchen as if for witness, and
stared at his mother.
She stared back.
He went out, going wide of Therru, who stood motionless. He slammed the door
behind him.
Tenar started to speak to Therru and could not.
"Don't cry," said the child who did not cry, coming to her, touching her arm.
"Did he hurt you?"
"Oh Therru! Let me hold you!" She sat down at the table with Therru on her
lap and in her arms, though the girl was getting big to be held, and had
never learned how to do it easily. But Tenar held her and wept, and Therru
bent her scarred face down against Tenar's, till it was wet with tears.
Ged and Spark came in at dusk from opposite ends of the farm. Spark had
evidently talked with Clearbrook and thought the situation over, and Ged was
evidently trying to size it up. Very little was said at supper, and that
cautiously. Spark made no complaint about not having his own room back, but
ran up the ladder to the storage-loft like the sailor he was, and was
apparently satisfied with the bed his mother had made him there, for he did
not come back down till late in the morning.
He wanted breakfast then, and expected it to be served to him. His father had
always been waited on by mother, wife, daughter. Was he less a man than his
father? Was she to prove it to him? She served him his meal and cleared it
away for him, and went back to the orchard where she and Therru and Shandy
were burning off a plague of tent caterpillars that threatened to destroy the
new-set fruit.
Spark went off to join Clearbrook and Tiff. And he stayed mostly with them,
as the days passed. The heavy work requiring muscle and the skilled work with
crops and sheep was done by Ged, Shandy, and Tenar, while the two old men who
had been there all their lives, his father's men, took him about and told him
how they managed it all, and truly believed they were managing it all, and
shared their belief with him.
Tenar became miserable in the house. Only outdoors, at the farmwork, did she
have relief from the anger, the shame that Spark's presence brought her.
"My turn," she said to Ged, bitterly, in the starlit darkness of their room.
"My turn to lose what I was proudest of."
"What have you lost?"
"My son. The son I did not bring up to be a man. I failed. I failed him." She
bit her lip, gazing dry-eyed into the dark.
Ged did not try to argue with her or persuade her out of her grief. He asked,
"Do you think he'll stay?"
"Yes. He's afraid to try and go back to sea. He didn't tell me the truth, or
not all the truth, about his ship. He was second mate. I suppose he was
involved in carrying stolen goods. Secondhand piracy. I don't care. Gontish
sailors are all half-pirate. But he lies about it. He lies. He is jealous of
you. A dishonest, envious man."
"Frightened, I think," Ged said. "Not wicked. And it is his farm."
"Then he can have it! And may it be as generous to him as-"
"No, dear love," Ged said, catching her with both voice and hands-"don't
speak-don't say the evil word!" He was so urgent, so passionately earnest,
that her anger turned right about into the love that was its source, and she
cried, "I wouldn't curse him, or this place! I didn't mean it! Only it makes
me so sorry, so ashamed! I am so sorry, Ged!"
"No, no, no. My dear, I don't care what the boy thinks of me. But he's very
hard on you."
"And Therru. He treats her like- He said, he said to me, 'What did she do, to
look like that?' What did she do-!"
Ged stroked her hair, as he often did, with a light, slow, repeated caress
that would make them both sleepy with loving pleasure.
"I could go off goat-herding again," he said at last. "It would make things
easier for you here. Except for the work." "
"I'd rather come with you."
He stroked her hair, and seemed to be considering. "I suppose we might," he
said. "There were a couple of families up there sheep-herding, above Lissu.
But then comes the winter... .
"Maybe some farmer would take us on. I know the work-and sheep-and you know
goats-and you're quick at everything-"
"Useful with pitchforks," he murmured, and got a little sob of a laugh from
her.
The next morning Spark was up early to breakfast with them, for he was going
fishing with old Tiff. He got up from the table, saying with a better grace
than usual, "I'll bring a mess of fish for supper.
Tenar had made resolves overnight. She said, "Wait; you can clear off the
table, Spark. Set the dishes in the sink and put water on 'em. They'll be
washed with the supper things."
He stared a moment and said, "That's women's work," putting on his cap.
"It's anybody's work who eats in this kitchen."
"Not mine," he said flatly, and went out.
She followed him. She stood on the doorstep. "Hawk's, but not yours?" she
demanded.
He merely nodded, going on across the yard.
"It's too late," she said, turning back to the kitchen. "Failed, failed." She
could feel the lines in her face, stiff, beside the mouth, between the eyes.
"You can water a stone," she said, "but it won't grow."
"You have to start when they're young and tender," Ged said. "Like me."
This time she couldn't laugh.
They came back to the house from the day's work and saw a man talking with
Spark at the front gate.
"That's the fellow from Re Albi, isn't it?" said Ged, whose eyes were very
good.
"Come along, Therru," Tenar said, for the child had stopped short. "What
fellow?" She was rather nearsighted, and squinted across the yard. "Oh, it's
what's his name, the sheep-dealer. Townsend. What's he back here for, the
carrion crow!"
Her mood all day had been fierce, and Ged and Therru wisely said nothing.
She went to the men at the gate.
"Did you come about the ewe lambs, Townsend? You're a year late; but there's
some of this year's yet in the fold."
"So the master's been telling me," said Townsend.
"Has he," said Tenar.
Spark's face went darker than ever at her tone.
"I won't interrupt you and the master, then," said she, and was turning away
when Townsend spoke: "I've got a message for you, Goha."
"Third time's the charm."
"The old witch, you know, old Moss, she's in a bad way. She said, since I was
coming down to Middle Valley, she said, 'Tell Mistress Goha I'd like to see
her before I die, if there's a chance of her coming." "
Crow, carrion crow, Tenar thought, looking with hatred at the bearer of bad
news.
"She's ill?"
"Sick to death," Townsend said, with a kind of smirk that might be intended
for sympathy. "Took sick in the winter, and she's failing fast, and so she
said to tell you she wants bad to see you, before she dies."
"Thank you for bringing the message," Tenar said soberly, and turned to go to
the house. Townsend went on with Spark to the sheepfolds.
As they prepared dinner, Tenar said to Ged and Therru, "I must go."
"Of course," Ged said. "The three of us, if you like."
"Would you?" For the first time that day her face lightened, the storm cloud
lifted. "Oh," she said, "that's-that's good-I didn't want to ask, I thought
maybe- Therru, would you like to go back to the little house, Ogion's house,
for a while?"
Therru stood still to think. "I could see my peach tree," she said.
"Yes, and Heather-and Sippy-and Moss-poor Moss! Oh, I have longed, I have
longed to go back up there, but it didn't seem right, There was the farm to
run-and all-"
It seemed to her that there was some other reason she had not gone back, had
not let herself think of going back, had not even known till now that she
yearned to go; but whatever the reason was it slipped away like a shadow, a
word forgotten. "Has anyone looked after Moss, I wonder, did anyone send for
a healer. She's the only healer on the Oveffell, but there's people down in
Gont Port who could help her, surely. Oh, poor Moss! I want to go- It's too
late, but tomorrow, tomorrow early. And the master can make his own
breakfast!"
"He'll learn," said Ged.
"No, he won't. He'll find some fool woman to do it for him. Ah!" She looked
around the kitchen, her face bright and fierce. "I hate to leave her the
twenty years I've scoured that table. I hope she appreciates it!"
Spark brought Townsend in for supper, but the sheep-dealer would not stay the
night, though he was of course offered a bed in common hospitality. It would
have been one of their beds, and Tenar did not like the thought. She was glad
to see him go off to his hosts in the village in the blue twilight of the
spring evening.
"We'll be off to Re Albi first thing tomorrow, son," she said to Spark. "Hawk
and Therru and I."
He looked a little frightened.
"Just go off like that?"
"So you went; so you came," said his mother. "Now look here, Spark: this is
your father's money-box. There's seven ivory pieces in it, and those credit
counters from old Bridgeman, but he'll never pay, he hasn't got anything to
pay with. These four Andradean pieces Flint got from selling sheepskins to
the ship's outfitter in Valmouth four years running, back when you were a
boy. These three Haynorian ones are what Tholy paid us for the High Creek
farm. I had your father buy that farm, and I helped him clear it and sell it.
I'll take those three pieces, for I've earned them. The rest, and the farm,
is yours. You're the master."
The tall, thin young man stood there with his gaze on the money-box.
"Take it all. I don't want it," he said in a low voice.
"I don't need it. But I thank you, my son. Keep the four pieces. When you
marry, call them my gift to your wife."
She put the box away in the place behind the big plate on the top shelf of
the dresser, where Flint had always kept it. "Therru, get your things ready
now, because we'll go very early."
"When are you coming back?" Spark asked, and the tone of his voice made Tenar
think of the restless, frail child he had been. But she said only, "I don't
know, my dear. If you need me, I'll come.
She busied herself getting out their travel shoes and packs. "Spark," she
said, "you can do something for me."
He had sat down in the hearthseat, looking uncertain and morose. "What?"
"Go down to Valmouth, soon, and see your sister. And tell her that I've gone
back to the Overfell. Tell her, if she wants me, just send word."
He nodded. He watched Ged, who had already packed his few belongings with the
neatness and dispatch of one who had traveled much, and was now putting up
the dishes to leave the kitchen in good order. That done, he sat down
opposite Spark to run a new cord through the eyelets of his pack to close it
at the top.
"There's a knot they use for that," Spark said. "Sailor's knot."
Ged silently handed the pack across the hearth, and watched as Spark silently
demonstrated the knot.
"Slips up, see," he said, and Ged nodded.
They left the farm in the dark and cold of the morning. Sunlight comes late
to the western side of Gont Mountain, and only walking kept them warm till at
last the sun got round the great mass of the south peak and shone on their
backs.
Therru was twice the walker she had been the summer before, but it was still
a two days' journey for them. Along in the afternoon, Tenar asked, "Shall we
try to get on to Oak Springs today? There's a sort of inn. We had a cup of
milk there, remember, Therru?"
Ged was looking up the mountainside with a faraway expression. "There's a
place I know
"Fine," said Tenar.
A little before they came to the high corner of the road from which Gont Port
could first be seen, Ged turned aside from the road into the forest that
covered the steep slopes above it. The westering sun sent slanting red-gold
rays into the darkness between the trunks and under the branches. They
climbed half a mile or so, on no path Tenar could see, and came out on a
little step or shelf of the mountainside, a meadow sheltered from the wind by
the cliffs behind it and the trees about it. From there one could see the
heights of'the mountain to the north, and between the tops of great firs
there was one clear view of the western sea. It was entirely silent there
except when the wind breathed in the firs. One mountain lark sang long and
sweet, away up in the sunlight, before dropping to her nest in the untrodden
grass.
The three of them ate their bread and cheese. They watched darkness rise up
the mountain from the sea. They made their bed of cloaks and slept, Therru
next to Tenar next to Ged, In the deep night Tenar woke. An owl was calling
nearby, a sweet repeated note like a bell, and far off up the mountain its
mate replied like the ghost of a bell. Tenar thought, "I'll watch the stars
set in the sea," but she fell asleep again at once in peace of heart.
She woke in the grey morning to see Ged sitting up beside her, his cloak
pulled round his shoulders, looking out through the gap westward. His dark
face was quite still, full of silence, as she had seen it once long ago on
the beach of Atuan. His eyes were not downcast, as then; he looked into the
illimitable west. Looking with him she saw the day coming, the glory of rose
and gold reflected clear across the sky.
He turned to her, and she said to him, "I have loved you since I first saw
you."
"Life-giver," he said and leaned forward, kissing her breast and mouth. She
held him a moment. They got up, and waked Therru, and went on their way; but
as they entered the trees Tenar looked back once at the little meadow as if
charging it to keep faith with her happiness there.
The first day of the journey their goal had been journeying. This day they
would come to Re Albi. So Tenar's mind was much on Aunty Moss, wondering what
had befallen her and whether she was indeed dying. But as the day and the way
went on her mind would not hold to the thought of Moss, or any thought. She
was tired. She did not like walking this way again to death. They passed Oak
Springs, and went down into the gorge, and started up again. By the last long
uphill stretch to the Overfell, her legs were hard to lift, and her mind was
stupid and confused, fastening upon one word or image until it became
meaningless-the dish-cupboard in Ogion's house, or the words bone dolphin,
which came into her head from seeing Therru's grass bag of toys, and repeated
themselves endlessly.
Ged strode along at his easy traveler's gait, and Therru trudged right beside
him, the same Therru who had worn out on this long climb less than a year
ago, and had to be
carried . But that had been after a longer day of walking. And the child had
still been recovering from her punishment.
She was getting old, too old to walk so far so fast. It was so hard going
uphill. An old woman should stay home by her fireside. The bone dolphin, the
bone dolphin. Bone, bound, the binding spell. The bone man and the bone
animal. There they went ahead. They were waiting for her. She was slow. She
was tired. She toiled on up the last stretch of the hill and came up to them
where the road came out on the level of the Overfell. To the left were the
roofs of Re Albi slanting down towards the cliff's edge. To the right the
road went up to the manor house. "This way,' Tenar said.
"No," the child said, pointing left, to the village.
"This way," Tenar repeated, and set off on the right-hand way. Ged came with
her.
They walked between the walnut orchards and the fields of grass. It was a
warm late afternoon of early summer. Birds sang in the orchard trees near and
far. He came walking down the road from the great house towards them, the one
whose name she could not remember.
"Welcome!" he said, and stopped, smiling at them.
They stopped.
"What great personages have come to honor the house of the Lord of Re Albi,"
he said. Tuaho, that was not his name. The bone dolphin, the bone animal, the
bone child.
"My Lord Archmage!" He bowed low, and Ged bowed to him.
"And my Lady Tenar of Atuan!" He bowed even lower to her, and she got down on
her knees in the road. Her head sank down, till she put her hands in the dirt
and crouched until her mouth too was on the dirt of the road.
"Now crawl," he said, and she began to crawl towards him.
"Stop," he said, and she stopped.
"Can you talk?" he asked. She said nothing, having no words that would come
to her mouth, but Ged replied in his usual quiet voice, "Yes."
"Where's the monster?"
"I don't know."
"I thought the witch would bring her familiar with her. But she brought you
instead. The Lord Archmage Sparrow-hawk. What a splendid substitute! All I
can do to witches and monsters is cleanse the world of them. But to you, who
used at one time to be a man, I can talk; you are capable of rational speech,
at least. And capable of understanding punishment. You thought you were safe,
I suppose, with your king on the throne, and my master, our master,
destroyed. You thought you'd had your will, and destroyed the promise of
eternal life, didn't you?"
"No," said Ged's voice.
She could not see them. She could see only the dirt of the road, and taste it
in her mouth. She heard Ged speak. He said, "In dying is life."
"Quack, quack, quote the Songs, Master of Roke- schoolmaster! What a funny
sight to see, the great archmage all got up like a goatherd, and not an ounce
of magic in him-not a word of power. Can you say a spell, archmage? Just a
little spell-just a tiny charm of illusion? No? Not a word? My master
defeated you. Now do you know it? You did not conquer him. His power lives! I
might keep you alive here awhile, to see that power-my power. To see the old
man I keep from death-and I might use your life for that if I need it-and to
see your meddling king make a fool of himself, with his mincing lords and
stupid wizards, look-
ing for a woman! A woman to rule us! But the rule is here, the mastery is
here, here, in this house. All this year I've been gathering others to me,
men who know the true power. From Roke, some of them, from right under the
noses of the schoolmasters. And from Havnor, from under the nose of that
so-called Son of Morred, who wants a woman to rule him, your king who thinks
he's so safe he can go by his true name. Do you know my name, archmage? Do
you remember me, four years ago, when you were the great Master of Masters
and I was a lowly student at Roke?"
"You were called Aspen," said the patient voice.
"And my true name?"
"I don't know your true name."
"What? You don't know it? Can't you find it? Don't mages know all names?"
"I'm not a mage."
"Oh, say it again."
"I'm not a mage."
"I like to hear you say it. Say it again."
"I'm not a mage."
"But I am!"
"Yes."
"Say it!"
"You are a mage."
"Ah! This is better than I hoped! I fished for the eel and caught the whale!
Come on, then, come meet my friends. You can walk. She can crawl."
So they went up the road to the manor house of the Lord of Re Albi and went
in, Tenar on hands and knees on the road, and on the marble steps up to the
door, and on the marble pavements of the halls and rooms.
Inside the house it was dark. With the darkness came a darkness into Tenar's
mind, so that she understood less and less of what was said. Only some words
and voices came to her clearly. What Ged said she understood, and when he
spoke she thought of his name, and clung to it in her mind. But he spoke very
seldom, and only to answer the one whose name was not Tuaho. That one spoke
to her now and then, calling her Bitch. "This is my new pet," he said to
other men, several of them that were there in the darkness where candles made
shadows. "See how well trained she is? Roll over, Bitch!" She rolled over,
and the men laughed.
"She had a whelp," he said, "that I planned to finish punishing, since it was
left half-burned. But she brought me a bird she'd caught instead, a
sparrowhawk. Tomorrow we'll teach it to fly."
Other voices said words, but she did not understand words any more.
Something was fastened around her neck and she was made to crawl up more
stairs and into a room that smelled of urine and rotting meat and sweet
flowers. Voices spoke. A cold hand like a stone struck her head feebly while
something laughed, "Eh, eh, eh," like an old door creaking back and forth.
Then she was kicked and made to crawl down halls. She could not crawl fast
enough, and was kicked in the breasts and in the mouth. Then there was a door
that crashed, and silence, and the dark. She heard somebody crying and
thought it was the child, her child. She wanted the child not to cry. At last
it stopped.
Tehanu
The child turned left and went some way before she looked back, letting the
blossoming hedgerow hide her.
The one called Aspen, whose name was Erisen, and whom she saw as a forked and
writhing darkness, had bound her mother and father, with a thong through her
tongue and a thong through his heart, and was leading them up toward the
place where he hid . The smell of the place was sickening to her, but she
followed a little way to see what he did. He led them in and shut the door
behind them. It was a stone door. She could not enter there.
She needed to fly, but she could not fly; she was not one of the winged ones.
She ran as fast as she could across the fields, past Aunty Moss's house, past
Ogion's house and the goats' house, onto the path along the cliff and to the
edge of the cliff, where she was not to go because she could see it only with
one eye. She was careful. She looked carefully with that eye. She stood on
the edge. The water was far below, and the sun was setting far away. She
looked into the west with the other eye, and called with the other voice the
name she had heard in her mother's dream.
She did not wait for an answer, but turned round again and went back-first
past Ogion's house to see if her peach tree had grown. The old tree stood
bearing many small, green peaches, but there was no sign of the seedling. The
goats had eaten it. Or it had died because she had not watered it. She stood
a little while looking at the ground there, then drew a long breath and went
on back across the fields to Aunty Moss's house.
Chickens going to roost squawked and fluttered, protesting her entrance. The
little hut was dark and very full of smells. "Aunty Moss?" she said, in the
voice she had for these people.
"Who's there?"
The old woman was in her bed, hiding. She was frightened, and tried to make
stone around her to keep everyone away, but it didn't work; she was not
strong enough.
"Who is it? Who's there? Oh dearie - oh dearie child, my little burned one,
my pretty, what are you doing here? Where's she, where's she, your mother,
oh, is she here? Did she come? Don't come in, don't come in, dearie, there's
a curse on me, he cursed the old woman, don't come near me! Don't come near!"
She wept. The child put out her hand and touched her. "You're cold," she said.
"You're like fire, child, your hand burns me. Oh, don't look at me! He made
my flesh rot, and shrivel, and rot again, but he won't let me die-he said I'd
bring you here. I tried to die, I tried, but he held me, he held me living
against my will, he won't let me die, oh, let me die!"
"You shouldn't die," the child said, frowning.
"Child," the old woman whispered, "dearie - call me by my name.
"Hatha," the child said.
"Ah. I knew. . . . Set me free, dearie!"
"I have to wait," the child said. "Till they come.
The witch lay easier, breathing without pain. "Till who come, dearie?" she
whispered.
"My people."
The witch's big, cold hand lay like a bundle of sticks in hers. She held it
firmly, It was as dark now outside the hut as inside it. Hatha, who was
called Moss, slept; and presently the child, sitting on the floor beside her
cot, with a hen perched nearby, slept also.
Men came when the light came. He said, "Up, Bitch! Up!" She got to her hands
and knees. He laughed, saying, "All the way up! You're a clever bitch, you
can walk on your hind legs, can't you? That's it. Pretend to be human! We
have a way to go now. Come!" The strap was still around her neck, and he
jerked it. She followed him.
"Here, you lead her," he said, and now it was that one, the one she loved,
but she did not know his name any more, who held the strap.
They all came out of the dark place. Stone yawned to let them pass and ground
together behind them.
He was always close beside her and the one who held the strap. Others came
behind, three or four men.
The fields were grey with dew. The mountain was dark against a pale sky.
Binds were beginning to sing in the orchards and hedgerows, louder and louder.
They came to the edge of the wonld and walked along it for a while until they
came to where the ground was only rock and the edge was very narrow, There
was a line in the rock, and she looked at that.
"He can push her," he said. "And then the hawk can fly, all by himself."
He unfastened the strap from around her neck.
"Go stand at the edge," he said. She followed the mark in the stone out to
the edge. The sea was below her, nothing else. The air was out beyond her.
"Now, Sparrowhawk will give her a push," he said. "But first, maybe she wants
to say something. She has so much to say. Women always do. Isn't there
anything you'd like to say to us, Lady Tenar?"
She could not speak, but she pointed to the sky above the sea.
"Albatross," he said.
She laughed aloud.
In the gulfs of light, from the doorway of the sky, the dragon flew, fire
trailing behind the coiling, mailed body. Tenar spoke then.
"Kalessin!" she cried, and then turned, seizing Ged's arm, pulling him down
to the rock, as the roar of fire went over them, the rattle of mail and the
hiss of wind in upraised wings, the clash of the talons like scytheblades on
the rock.
The wind blew from the sea. A tiny thistle growing in a cleft in the rock
near her hand nodded and nodded in the wind from the sea.
Ged was beside her. They were crouched side by side, the sea behind them and
the dragon before them.
It looked at them sidelong from one long, yellow eye. Ged spoke in a hoarse,
shaking voice, in the dragon's language. Tenar understood the words, which
were only, "Our thanks, Eldest."
Looking at Tenar, Kalessin spoke, in the huge voice like a broom of metal
dragged across a gong: "Aro Tebanu?"
"The child," Tenar said - "Therru!" She got to her feet to run, to seek her
child. She saw her coming along the ledge of rock between the mountain and
the sea, toward the dragon.
"Don't run, Therru!" she cried, but the child had seen
her and was running, running straight to her. They clung to each other.
The dragon turned its enormous, rust-dark head to watch them with both eyes.
The nostril pits, big as kettles, were bright with fire, and wisps of smoke
curled from them. The heat of the dragon's body beat through the cold sea
wind.
"Tehanu," the dragon said.
The child turned to look at it.
"Kalessin," she said.
Then Ged, who had remained kneeling, stood up, though shakily, catching
Tenar's arm to steady himself. He laughed. "Now I know who called thee,
Eldest!" he said.
"I did," the child said. "I did not know what else to do, Segoy. "
She still looked at the dragon, and she spoke in the language of the dragons,
the words of the Making.
"It was well, child," the dragon said. "I have sought thee long."
"Shall we go there now?" the child asked. "Where the others are, on the other
wind?"
"Would you leave these?"
"No," said the child. "Can they not come?"
"They cannot come. Their life is here."
"I will stay with them," she said, with a little catch of breath.
Kalessin turned aside to give that immense furnace-blast of laughter or
contempt or delight or anger - "Hah!" Then, looking again at the child, "It
is well. Thou hast work to do here."
"I know," the child said.
"I will come back for thee," Kalessin said, "in time." And, to Ged and Tenar,
"I give you my child, as you will give me yours.
"In time," Tenar said.
Kalessin's great head bowed very slightly, and the long, sword-toothed mouth
curled up at the corner.
Ged and Tenar drew aside with Therru as the dragon turned, dragging its armor
across the ledge, placing its taloned feet carefully, gathering its black
haunches like a cat, till it sprang aloft. The vaned wings shot up crimson in
the new light, the spurred tail rang hissing on the rock, and it flew, it was
gone-a gull, a swallow, a thought.
Where it had been lay scorched rags of cloth and leather, and other things.
"Come away," Ged said.
But the woman and the child stood and looked at those things.
"They are bone people," Therru said. She turned away then and set off. She
went ahead of the man and woman along the narrow path.
"Her native tongue," Ged said. "Her mother tongue."
"Tehanu," said Tenar. "Her name is Tehanu."
"She has been given it by the giver of names.
"She has been Tehanu since the beginning. Always, she has been Tehanu. "
"Come on!" the child said, looking back at them. "Aunty Moss is sick."
They were able to move Moss out into the light and air, to wash her sores,
and to burn the foul linens of her bed, while Therru brought clean bedding
from Ogion's house. She also brought Heather the goatgirl back with her. With
Heather's help they got the old woman comfortable in her bed, with her
chickens; and Heather promised to come back with something for them to eat.
"Someone must go down to Gont Port," Ged said, "for the wizard there. To look
after Moss; she can be healed.
And to go to the manor house. The old man will die now. The grandson
might live, if the house is made clean He had sat down on the doorstep of
Moss's house. He leaned his head back against the doorjamb, in the sunlight,
and closed his eyes. "Why do we do what we do?" he said.
Tenar was washing her face and hands and arms in a basin of clear water she
had drawn from the pump. She looked round when she was done. Utterly spent,
Ged had fallen asleep, his face a little upturned to the morning light. She
sat down beside him on the doorstep and laid her head against his shoulder.
Are we spared? she thought. How is it we are spared?
She looked down at Ged's hand, relaxed and open on the earthen step. She
thought of the thistle that nodded in the wind, and of the taloned foot of
the dragon with its scales of red and gold. She was half-asleep when the
child sat down beside her.
"Tehanu," she murmured.
"The little tree died," the child said.
After a while Tenar's weary, sleepy mind understood, and woke up enough to
make a reply. "Are there peaches on the old tree?"
They spoke low, not to waken the sleeping man. "Only little green ones."
"They'll ripen, after the Long Dance. Soon now. "Can we plant one?"
"More than one, if you like. Is the house all right?"
"It's empty."
"Shall we live there?" She roused a little more, and put her arm around the
child. "I have money," she said, "enough to buy a herd of goats, and Turby's
winter-pasture, if it's still for sale. Ged knows where to take them up the
mountain, summers. . . . I wonder if the wool we combed is still there?" So
saying, she thought, We left the books, Ogion's books! On the mantel at Oak
Farm-for Spark, poor boy, he can't read a word of them!
But it did not seem to matter. There were new things to be learned, no
doubt. And she could send somebody for the books, if Ged wanted them. And for
her spinning wheel. Or she could go down herself, come autumn, and see her
son, and visit with Lark, and stay a while with Apple. They would have to
replant Ogion's garden right away if they wanted any vegetables of their own
this summer. She thought of the rows of beans and the scent of the bean
flowers. She thought of the small window that looked west. "I think we can
live there," she said.
--
我不愿做岩石,不愿意做孤岛。
因为岩石与岩石之间,孤岛与孤岛之间,
虽然同晒着太阳,同激起白沫,同守着海上的寂静,
在如此亲密的关系下,却是彼此陌生的灵魂。
※ 来源:·哈工大紫丁香 bbs.hit.edu.cn·[FROM: 210.46.71.101]
Powered by KBS BBS 2.0 (http://dev.kcn.cn)
页面执行时间:2,947.055毫秒